Selected quad for the lemma: head_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
head_n church_n member_n mystical_a 3,558 5 10.4248 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14350 The common places of the most famous and renowmed diuine Doctor Peter Martyr diuided into foure principall parts: with a large addition of manie theologicall and necessarie discourses, some neuer extant before. Translated and partlie gathered by Anthonie Marten, one of the sewers of hir Maiesties most honourable chamber.; Loci communes. English Vermigli, Pietro Martire, 1499-1562.; Simmler, Josias, 1530-1576.; Marten, Anthony, d. 1597. 1583 (1583) STC 24669; ESTC S117880 3,788,596 1,858

There are 37 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o leven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n where_o he_o manifest_o use_v a_o figure_n &_o that_o such_o a_o figure_n as_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n understand_v he_o amiss_o moreover_o in_o the_o 7._o 11._o matt._n 7._o 11._o of_o matthew_n he_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n for_o they_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o say_v he_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n but_o inward_o they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n in_o which_o commandment_n who_o perceive_v not_o a_o figurative_a speech_n and_o in_o teach_v of_o doctrine_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o figure_n &_o trope_n be_v use_v paul_n say_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n 29_o 1._o cor._n 10._o 4_o ib._n ver_fw-la 18._o heb._n 12._o 29_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n we_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o of_o god_n it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o be_v a_o consume_a fire_n 68_o afterward_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v every_o where_o 13._o whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v everywhere_o look_v in_o the_o dialogue_n several_o set_v out_o by_o p._n martyr_n concern_v this_o manner_n john_n 3._o 13._o and_o that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o nichodemus_n in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o john_n where_o it_o be_v say_v no_o man_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n even_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n behold_v say_v they_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o be_v christ_n speak_v unto_o they_o as_o touch_v his_o humane_a nature_n and_o be_v also_o in_o heaven_n because_o the_o humane_a nature_n can_v be_v pluck_v away_o from_o the_o divine_a therefore_o what_o he_o affirm_v of_o one_o must_v also_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o other_o but_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o we_o will_v not_o divide_v these_o two_o nature_n one_o from_o a_o other_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o that_o that_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o one_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o other_o indeed_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o but_o we_o will_v not_o attribute_v the_o same_o unto_o his_o body_n and_o humanity_n and_o this_o do_v augustine_n unto_o dardanus_n most_o manifest_o teach_v and_o that_o which_o be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o john_n the_o same_o augustine_n enterprete_v that_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v in_o heaven_n as_o touch_v his_o divine_a nature_n neither_o do_v chrysostome_n otherwise_o judge_v when_o he_o expound_v this_o place_n for_o he_o affirm_v that_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v not_o attribute_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n but_o how_o feeble_a a_o argument_n this_o be_v these_o two_o nature_n be_v join_v together_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o one_o must_v be_v attribute_v also_o to_o the_o other_o this_o may_v be_v show_v by_o the_o like_a the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n and_o the_o light_n thereof_o have_v between_o they_o a_o natural_a and_o excellent_a conjunction_n yet_o the_o light_n extend_v not_o itself_o to_o every_o place_n whereunto_o the_o body_n do_v real_o attain_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o body_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n our_o eye_n and_o sight_n be_v very_o much_o join_v one_o with_o a_o other_o and_o yet_o do_v our_o sight_n attain_v to_o many_o thing_n unto_o which_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n extend_v not_o afterward_o they_o argue_v that_o unto_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n many_o thing_n must_v be_v grant_v beside_o the_o common_a course_n and_o condition_n of_o other_o body_n and_o that_o for_o two_o cause_n partly_o because_o it_o be_v glorify_v and_o partly_o because_o it_o have_v the_o word_n join_v with_o it_o we_o confess_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v give_v but_o to_o be_v every_o where_o this_o can_v be_v fit_a for_o it_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n body_n preserve_v and_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v this_o unto_o it_o it_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v renown_n but_o ruin_n thereunto_o for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v extrude_v from_o his_o own_o nature_n moreover_o it_o do_v not_o much_o further_a this_o matter_n because_o although_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n have_v this_o in_o it_o that_o it_o can_v be_v in_o many_o place_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o thereof_o follow_v that_o god_n will_v deal_v so_o in_o this_o sacrament_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n 69_o moreover_o they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v this_o corporal_a presence_n by_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o teacher_n who_o see_v he_o can_v extend_v his_o word_n unto_o many_o hearer_n in_o they_o he_o communicate_v unto_o the_o hearer_n the_o concept_n of_o his_o mind_n so_o as_o all_o they_o understand_v he_o full_o alike_o so_o say_v he_o do_v god_n deal_v in_o the_o word_n which_o be_v utter_v at_o the_o sacrament_n he_o fold_v his_o body_n in_o they_o that_o by_o they_o he_o may_v be_v show_v in_o all_o these_o sign_n and_o may_v be_v communicate_v unto_o all_o that_o be_v receiver_n wherefore_o that_o which_o be_v grant_v unto_o a_o master_n and_o that_o a_o earthly_a master_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v grant_v unto_o christ_n but_o the_o comparison_n be_v far_o wide_a and_o as_o we_o say_v before_o word_n do_v not_o discover_v thing_n or_o the_o concept_n of_o the_o mind_n unless_o it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o signification_n and_o that_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n which_o afterward_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o out_o of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n where_o it_o be_v say_v 22._o ephe._n 5._o 22._o christ_n be_v give_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n which_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o gréeke_n be_v the_o fullness_n of_o he_o that_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o thing_n for_o the_o apostle_n mean_v not_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n fill_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v every_o where_o as_o these_o man_n infer_v ephesian_n a_o exposition_n of_o a_o place_n to_o the_o ephesian_n but_o because_o the_o signification_n of_o that_o verb_n or_o participle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d fulfil_n be_v doubtful_a for_o it_o may_v be_v take_v both_o active_o and_o passivelie_o see_v it_o be_v a_o verb_n of_o the_o mean_a voice_n if_o thou_o understand_v it_o passive_o according_a to_o the_o gréeke_n exposition_n the_o sense_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fill_v as_o touch_v all_o thing_n in_o all_o his_o member_n not_o that_o he_o be_v accomplish_v in_o himself_o for_o he_o be_v both_o sufficient_o perfect_a &_o happy_a howbeit_o that_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o body_n &_o member_n for_o as_o to_o be_v the_o head_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o so_o likewise_o the_o church_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n namely_o for_o that_o it_o fill_v and_o make_v perfect_a his_o mystical_a body_n but_o if_o the_o signification_n thereof_o be_v active_a then_o shall_v it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n because_o he_o himself_o perfect_v all_o the_o gift_n and_o virtue_n in_o all_o his_o member_n where_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v not_o every_o where_n neither_o be_v the_o sense_n that_o he_o as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v every_o where_o and_o it_o be_v think_v that_o this_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n 15._o joh._n 11._o ver_fw-la 14._o &_o 15._o for_o christ_n open_o confess_v that_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a when_o he_o be_v not_o there_o but_o if_o he_o will_v contend_v that_o he_o have_v not_o a_o glorify_a body_n it_o make_v not_o much_o to_o the_o matter_n because_o he_o have_v nevertheless_o the_o godhead_n join_v with_o it_o but_o to_o take_v away_o the_o doubt_n the_o angel_n now_o after_o the_o resurrection_n say_v unto_o the_o woman_n he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v not_o here_o 7._o matt._n 28._o ver_fw-la 6._o &_o 7._o and_o again_o he_o shall_v go_v before_o you_o into_o galilee_n and_o again_o 9_o acts._n 1._o 9_o he_o be_v take_v away_o from_o their_o eye_n as_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n wherefore_o he_o fill_v not_o all_o thing_n nor_o be_v every_o where_o 70_o they_o be_v wont_v also_o to_o cite_v a_o place_n in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 10._o verse_n 10._o he_o that_o descend_v be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o ascend_v even_o above_o all_o heaven_n expound_v an_o other_o place_n to_o the_o ephesian_n expound_v that_o he_o may_v fill_v all_o thing_n which_o place_n notwithstanding_o proove_v nothing_o and_o be_v expound_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o that_o to_o fill_v all_o thing_n be_v refer_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v
by_o faith_n be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o it_o may_v be_v sound_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o peculiar_a gift_n for_o they_o which_o be_v true_a member_n of_o this_o body_n under_o the_o head_n christ_n and_o this_o treatise_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n we_o will_v for_o the_o easy_a understanding_n divide_v into_o three_o point_n to_o be_v consider_v consider_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o which_o the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o by_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n but_o here_o must_v we_o see_v by_o what_o way_n and_o mean_v the_o lord_n be_v wont_v to_o give_v this_o grace_n and_o spirit_n the_o which_o we_o can_v otherwise_o define_v than_o by_o faith_n for_o the_o benefit_n which_o god_n offer_v unto_o we_o be_v meet_a to_o be_v receive_v of_o he_o that_o will_v enjoy_v they_o and_o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o receive_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o we_o by_o he_o whereunto_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n necessary_o require_v faith_n two_o thing_n necessary_o require_v in_o faith_n one_o be_v that_o that_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o which_o be_v good_a the_o other_o that_o we_o give_v our_o consent_n but_o to_o receive_v &_o consent_n we_o have_v need_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o shall_v inwardlie_o persuade_v the_o mind_n for_o otherwise_o a_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o natural_a corruption_n will_v turn_v away_o himself_o as_o to_o who_o these_o promise_n of_o god_n these_o mercy_n offer_v and_o this_o remission_n of_o sin_n may_v natural_o seem_v not_o likely_a to_o be_v true_a and_o to_o be_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n and_o he_o will_v be_v far_o from_o the_o through_o consideration_n of_o they_o see_v as_o the_o philosopher_n themselves_o also_o say_v he_o will_v no_o less_o be_v blind_v unto_o divine_a thing_n than_o the_o mole_n be_v at_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n whereof_o there_o be_v a_o testimony_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o natural_a man_n say_v he_o understand_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o he_o that_o we_o may_v have_v need_n of_o that_o inward_a move_n lest_o we_o shall_v refuse_v the_o benefit_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o us._n and_o indeed_o in_o this_o move_n there_o be_v two_o excellent_a gift_n the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o gift_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n offer_v unto_o us._n the_o second_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v offer_v shall_v be_v please_v unto_o we_o and_o that_o by_o give_v our_o assent_n we_o receive_v and_o embrace_v they_o which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v grant_v unto_o we_o none_o otherwise_o to_o be_v use_v but_o as_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n how_o excellent_a and_o great_a soever_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v by_o the_o which_o he_o free_o forgive_v our_o sin_n 44._o act_n 10_o 44._o wherefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n while_o peter_n yet_o speak_v the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v down_o upon_o they_o which_o hear_v he_o 17._o rom._n 10_o 17._o and_o by_o paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v say_v that_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o as_o the_o church_n preach_v continual_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o her_o minister_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n offer_v in_o her_o sermon_n reconciliation_n by_o christ_n it_o give_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o that_o by_o the_o outward_a ministry_n it_o pronounce_v the_o same_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o which_o through_o attentive_a ear_n as_o through_o a_o conduit_n both_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v slow_a in_o even_o unto_o our_o hart_n wherefore_o it_o be_v most_o firm_o conclude_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o very_a same_o mean_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v be_v the_o original_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o thing_n see_v it_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o church_n only_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o sin_n be_v forgive_v no_o where_o else_o word_n sacrament_n be_v visible_a word_n 45_o a_o other_o consideration_n we_o will_v add_v which_o concern_v the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o be_v visible_a word_n of_o this_o absolution_n for_o even_o as_o the_o word_n sound_v and_o be_v hear_v in_o the_o voice_n so_o in_o a_o visible_a and_o evident_a sign_n a_o sacrament_n do_v speak_v and_o admonish_v we_o unto_o the_o which_o we_o give_v credit_n obtain_v in_o very_a deed_n that_o which_o it_o do_v promise_n and_o signify_v neither_o do_v we_o otherwise_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o signification_n hereof_o than_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o have_v above_o declare_v but_o think_v you_o not_o that_o sin_n be_v forgive_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o work_n that_o be_v wrought_v through_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n see_v this_o we_o obtain_v by_o faith_n while_o we_o believe_v that_o which_o it_o visible_o teach_v we_o according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o a_o sacrament_n may_v be_v of_o the_o same_o value_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sacrament_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v offer_v by_o the_o word_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o sacrament_n for_o even_o as_o this_o word_n signify_v and_o give_v in_o very_a deed_n unto_o the_o beléever_n whatsoever_o it_o do_v promise_n so_o baptism_n be_v by_o faith_n receive_v both_o signify_v and_o give_v to_o the_o beléever_n remission_n of_o sin_n the_o which_o it_o promise_v by_o a_o visible_a speak_n but_o indeed_o it_o may_v be_v object_v unto_o i_o if_o so_o be_v that_o sin_n as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v be_v forgive_v unto_o they_o which_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n as_o by_o preach_v it_o be_v set_v forth_o to_o we_o how_o can_v they_o then_o again_o be_v forgive_v by_o baptism_n i_o answer_v that_o as_o touch_v god_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o absolution_n be_v all_o one_o and_o as_o concern_v our_o sin_n the_o remission_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o the_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v as_o often_o confirm_v and_o renew_v in_o we_o as_o we_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o word_n whereby_o the_o same_o be_v signify_v unto_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o by_o visible_a sign_n it_o be_v all_o one_o so_o that_o how_o often_o soever_o we_o either_o hear_v the_o word_n or_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o faith_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v assure_v unto_o we_o whereby_o no_o small_a faith_n be_v inwardlie_o pour_v into_o us._n sacrament_n a_o benefit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o ought_v to_o seem_v no_o marvel_n unto_o any_o man_n wherefore_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n see_v that_o by_o they_o his_o pleasure_n be_v that_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v have_v recourse_n into_o the_o beléever_n no_o less_o than_o by_o the_o outward_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n even_o as_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o daily_a experience_n but_o yet_o so_o as_o neither_o of_o these_o can_v profit_v any_o man_n without_o faith_n wherefore_o we_o have_v hitherto_o declare_v two_o mean_n by_o which_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o two_o way_n whereby_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v set_v forth_o unto_o they_o that_o believe_v but_o and_o if_o thou_o demand_v which_o of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o name_n signify_v this_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v baptism_n in_o the_o which_o we_o be_v wash_v with_o visible_a water_n be_v a_o sign_n that_o we_o by_o christ_n obtain_v spiritual_a cleanse_n and_o that_o be_v it_o which_o paul_n teach_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n that_o god_n have_v purge_v his_o church_n with_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n of_o life_n 26._o ephe._n 5_o 26._o 46_o but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v excommunication_n of_o excommunication_n what_o be_v the_o three_o mean_v of_o this_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o church_n by_o the_o singular_a gift_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n have_v right_a and_o authority_n as_o it_o have_v be_v already_o say_v to_o cut_v off_o from_o she_o by_o excommunication_n they_o that_o be_v obstinate_a the_o order_n whereof_o christ_n have_v describe_v and_o teach_v unto_o she_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n 17._o mat._n 18_o 17._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o brotherlie_a correction_n whereby_o man_n be_v admonish_v that_o unless_o they_o do_v repent_v it_o shall_v proceed_v even_o to_o the_o uttermost_a punishment_n of_o separation_n the_o which_o so_o long_o may_v stand_v in_o
to_o have_v a_o regard_n unto_o he_o and_o only_o to_o seek_v his_o glory_n and_o they_o that_o be_v lead_v by_o his_o spirit_n follow_v not_o the_o affection_n and_o provocation_n of_o lust_n hereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o what_o sort_n faithful_a and_o godly_a man_n be_v in_o christ_n cause_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o christ_n by_o all_o kind_n of_o cause_n and_o that_o by_o all_o the_o kind_n of_o cause_n for_o christ_n and_o we_o have_v all_o one_o matter_n also_o we_o have_v the_o selfsame_o first_o entrance_n of_o form_n for_o we_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o selfsame_a note_n property_n and_o condition_n which_o he_o have_v the_o efficient_a cause_n whereby_o we_o be_v move_v to_o work_v be_v the_o same_o spirit_n whereby_o he_o be_v move_v last_o the_o end_n be_v all_o one_o namely_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n may_v be_v advance_v 36_o furthermore_n 12._o in_o 1._o cor._n 12_o 12._o every_o assembly_n and_o congregation_n of_o man_n which_o tend_v to_o a_o definite_a and_o certain_a end_n and_o be_v govern_v by_o prescript_n law_n may_v be_v call_v a_o body_n body_n what_o society_n be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o body_n wherefore_o a_o city_n a_o commonweal_n &_o a_o kingdom_n be_v call_v certain_a body_n because_o they_o have_v a_o certain_a end_n to_o wit_n that_o man_n may_v both_o be_v in_o good_a state_n as_o touch_v the_o body_n and_o may_v live_v according_a to_o virtue_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n unto_o a_o declaration_n what_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n have_v respect_n unto_o which_o be_v the_o church_n have_v not_o only_o respect_v unto_o this_o but_o unto_o eternal_a life_n also_o and_o it_o have_v all_o these_o thing_n in_o common_a namely_o god_n christ_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o word_n of_o god_n grace_n the_o sacrament_n and_o it_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o world_n which_o pertain_v to_o mutual_a help_a one_o of_o a_o other_o and_o this_o body_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o ordinance_n and_o saieng_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o it_o live_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n body_n of_o this_o body_n we_o have_v a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n two_o manner_n of_o conjunction_n of_o the_o member_n of_o this_o body_n and_o of_o this_o thing_n we_o have_v a_o excellent_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n wherein_o we_o confess_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n but_o in_o the_o member_n of_o this_o body_n there_o be_v observe_v two_o sort_n of_o conjunction_n one_o be_v that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o retain_v among_o themselves_o and_o the_o other_o that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v with_o christ_n touch_v this_o thing_n we_o be_v very_o well_o instruct_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 16._o verse_n 16._o where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o by_o the_o head_n christ_n be_v minister_v life_n and_o spirit_n by_o the_o joint_n and_o knit_v together_o of_o the_o member_n into_o the_o whole_a body_n that_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o part_n there_o may_v be_v a_o increase_n in_o the_o body_n the_o same_o be_v also_o show_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o colossian_n church_n verse_n 19_o the_o wicked_a be_v not_o very_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o church_n by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v that_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o very_o of_o the_o church_n see_v the_o spirit_n be_v not_o instill_v into_o they_o by_o christ_n the_o head_n indeed_o they_o may_v be_v conversant_a in_o the_o church_n but_o they_o can_v be_v of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a imagination_n bring_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o there_o can_v be_v wither_v and_o dead_a member_n in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o may_v be_v reviue_v again_o 15._o a_o dead_a part_n of_o a_o body_n be_v no_o more_o call_v a_o member_n of_o the_o body_n 1._o cor._n 6_o 15._o a_o member_n that_o be_v dead_a be_v a_o member_n no_o more_o neither_o yet_o ought_v to_o be_v call_v a_o member_n unless_o thou_o will_v have_v it_o all_o one_o that_o to_o be_v a_o man_n which_o be_v but_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o man_n and_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n shall_v i_o take_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v of_o it_o the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v these_o thing_n be_v repugnant_a one_o with_o another_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v the_o member_n of_o each_o of_o they_o us._n a_o most_o near_a conjunction_n between_o christ_n &_o us._n wherefore_o this_o similitude_n declare_v what_o manner_n of_o conjunction_n ought_v to_o be_v among_o we_o and_o with_o christ_n and_o certeinelie_o even_o as_o we_o have_v say_v we_o be_v so_o join_v with_o christ_n as_o we_o be_v call_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n because_o through_o his_o incarnation_n we_o be_v make_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o kind_n that_o he_o be_v of_o and_o afterward_o his_o grace_n and_o spirit_n come_v to_o we_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o spiritual_a condition_n and_o property_n cyrill_n cyrill_n as_o it_o have_v be_v above_o declare_v wherefore_o cyrill_n write_v unto_o reginas_fw-la of_o the_o right_a faith_n say_v that_o our_o flesh_n be_v together_o in_o one_o substance_n with_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o those_o that_o otherwise_o will_v judge_v he_o hold_v they_o accurse_v 37_o and_o for_o the_o prove_v of_o so_o great_a a_o conjunction_n between_o we_o &_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o the_o corporal_a and_o substantial_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o many_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o we_o shall_v have_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o profit_n or_o commodity_n by_o the_o same_o than_o if_o we_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o touch_v his_o body_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n for_o we_o see_v that_o christian_n may_v be_v member_n one_o of_o another_o and_o that_o most_o néerelie_o knit_v together_o although_o some_o of_o they_o live_v in_o england_n some_o in_o france_n and_o some_o in_o spain_n but_o if_o so_o be_v this_o be_v grant_v as_o touch_v the_o member_n themselves_o why_o shall_v it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o grant_v the_o same_o touch_v the_o head_n that_o by_o this_o spiritual_a conjunction_n it_o may_v both_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o also_o be_v join_v spiritual_o with_o we_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n the_o very_a which_o thing_n we_o see_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o matrimony_n wherein_o the_o holy_a scripture_n declare_v 6._o matt._n 19_o 6._o that_o man_n and_o wife_n be_v one_o flesh_n which_o thing_n our_o adversary_n be_v constrain_v to_o grant_v no_o less_o to_o be_v true_a when_o man_n and_o wife_n be_v sometime_o in_o sundry_a place_n distant_a one_o from_o another_o than_o when_o they_o dwell_v in_o one_o house_n together_o if_o so_o be_v than_o it_o be_v so_o in_o they_o presence_n to_o this_o conjunction_n between_o christ_n and_o we_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n why_o shall_v we_o deny_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v join_v unto_o we_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o we_o may_v be_v one_o with_o he_o although_o by_o substantial_a and_o corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n he_o be_v absent_a from_o we_o they_o be_v ever_o fly_v unto_o that_o sentence_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o though_o it_o may_v not_o otherwise_o be_v understand_v but_o that_o there_o must_v be_v affirm_v a_o natural_a presence_n when_o nevertheless_o we_o will_v confess_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n into_o the_o which_o we_o neither_o be_v transubstantiate_v neither_o be_v it_o require_v that_o any_o of_o we_o in_o corporal_a presence_n shall_v be_v join_v with_o other_o as_o concern_v place_n but_o of_o these_o thing_n we_o will_v speak_v very_o large_o elsewhere_o touch_v the_o adoption_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o eight_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n verse_n 15._o 38_o this_o place_n seem_v to_o require_v that_o we_o speak_v somewhat_o also_o of_o the_o adoption_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o lawyer_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o institution_n define_v adoption_n to_o be_v a_o lawful_a act_n which_o do_v imitate_v nature_n adoption_n a_o definition_n of_o adoption_n how_o arrogation_n differ_v from_o adoption_n find_v out_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o they_o which_o have_v no_o child_n further_o they_o make_v a_o distinction_n between_o adoption_n and_o arrogation_n for_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v arrogation_n when_o he_o that_o be_v his_o own_o man_n and_o at_o liberty_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o stead_n of_o a_o son_n but_o adoption_n be_v when_o he_o that_o
universallie_o pronounce_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v always_o admit_v a_o exception_n or_o restraint_n 12_o john_n 10_o 8._o 1._o cor._n 6_o 12_o all_o say_v christ_n as_o many_o as_o have_v come_v before_o i_o be_v thief_n and_o robber_n all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a unto_o i_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o expedient_a here_o may_v be_v understand_v the_o figure_n synecdoche_n so_o as_o it_o may_v be_v mean_v that_o in_o the_o same_o all_o be_v comprehend_v some_o part_n and_o when_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o the_o creature_n shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n it_o may_v be_v general_o understand_v as_o touch_v the_o world_n because_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v any_o more_o constrain_v to_o renew_v creature_n by_o a_o new_a generation_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o thereby_o that_o all_o creature_n as_o touch_v the_o particular_a kind_n shall_v be_v preserve_v i_o think_v it_o therefore_o the_o part_n of_o a_o godly_a mind_n to_o affirm_v neither_o part_n obstinate_o for_o we_o have_v nothing_o on_o either_o part_n that_o be_v certeinelie_o define_v restore_v of_o creature_n that_o be_v dead_a only_o man_n shall_v be_v restore_v but_o yet_o this_o i_o dare_v bold_o say_v that_o of_o those_o creature_n which_o have_v die_v only_o man_n shall_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n but_o as_o concern_v the_o preservation_n of_o other_o creature_n after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n except_o heaven_n and_o earth_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n have_v make_v mention_n i_o think_v nothing_o be_v to_o be_v say_v for_o see_v we_o lack_v scripture_n we_o must_v not_o over_o curious_o search_v out_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v enough_o if_o we_o do_v understand_v this_o that_o for_o our_o sake_n be_v bring_v in_o the_o corruption_n of_o thing_n and_o again_o that_o when_o we_o shall_v be_v renew_v all_o thing_n which_o shall_v remain_v shall_v be_v better_o than_o they_o be_v before_o but_o we_o must_v in_o such_o sort_n bend_v the_o strength_n of_o our_o knowledge_n salvation_n we_o must_v so_o direct_v our_o knowledge_n as_o we_o let_v not_o flip_v the_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o we_o let_v not_o those_o thing_n escape_v we_o which_o be_v necessa_fw-la unto_o salvation_n such_o as_o be_v the_o doctrine_n concern_v god_n justification_n worship_v good_a work_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o use_n shall_v never_o be_v sincere_a and_o pure_a unless_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o be_v well_o perceive_v and_o know_v for_o if_o we_o attribute_v unto_o they_o more_o or_o less_o than_o it_o behoove_v we_o shall_v perpetuallie_o err_v the_o scripture_n be_v chéeflie_o occupy_v about_o these_o principal_a point_n namely_o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a salvation_n 2._o tim._n 3_o 1●_n those_o thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o instruct_v to_o every_o good_a work_n but_o these_o thing_n that_o the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o let_v we_o not_o think_v they_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o good_a as_o if_o they_o be_v necessary_a he_o doubtless_o will_v have_v teach_v they_o in_o the_o scripture_n ¶_o as_o touch_v eternal_a life_n look_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o part_n and_o of_o felicitis_n look_v the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n and_o all_o the_o whole_a commentary_n upon_o aristotle_n ethic_n the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o part._n e_o r_z the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o common_a place_n of_o peter_n martyr_n wherein_o be_v entreat_v of_o the_o outward_a mean_n which_o god_n use_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n and_o preservation_n of_o man_n society_n the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o function_n call_v office_n dignity_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o minister_n in_o the_o same_o church_n derive_v in_o 1._o cor._n 1._o look_v in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr voris_fw-la pa_n 440._o and_o 456._o print_v in_o ba●…_n whence_o the_o name_n of_o church_n be_v derive_v the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n be_v derive_v of_o the_o greek_a verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o call_v for_o none_o can_v be_v partaker_n thereof_o which_o come_v not_o thereunto_o by_o the_o call_n of_o god_n and_o to_o define_v it_o church_n the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o company_n of_o believer_n and_o regenerate_v person_n who_o god_n gather_v together_o in_o christ_n by_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o his_o minister_n govern_v the_o same_o with_o pureness_n of_o doctrine_n with_o lawful_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o with_o discipline_n and_o it_o be_v every_o where_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o have_v he_o for_o their_o head_n of_o who_o by_o the_o joint_n and_o synowe_v they_o take_v their_o grow_v &_o attain_v unto_o life_n by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o member_n be_v so_o thorough_o join_v unto_o the_o head_n as_o they_o be_v call_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n &_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n 30._o ephe._n 5._o 30._o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o confess_v the_o same_o in_o the_o créede_v when_o we_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o we_o add_v straight_o way_n by_o exposition_n 34._o who_o in_o right_n and_o before_o god_n be_v of_o the_o church_n look_v in_o 1._o sam._n 15._o 34._o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n for_o they_o alone_o true_o and_o before_o god_n be_v of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o otherwise_o have_v mingle_v therewith_o very_a many_o which_o be_v stranger_n from_o christ_n and_o these_o in_o show_n only_o not_o in_o deed_n do_v belong_v unto_o the_o church_n wherefore_o of_o they_o john_n say_v they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o 39_o 1._o john_n 2._o 19_o matth._n 13._o 39_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o us._n and_o it_o be_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o when_o the_o goodman_n of_o the_o house_n and_o his_o servant_n be_v asleep_a the_o devil_n sow_v tare_n upon_o the_o good_a seed_n and_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o first_o chapter_n 2._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 2._o after_o he_o have_v salute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n add_v by_o exposition_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v by_o christ_n jesus_n be_v call_v saint_n that_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o wicked_a appertain_v not_o in_o very_a deed_n unto_o the_o church_n although_o they_o be_v always_o conversant_a therein_o and_o that_o as_o we_o say_v a_o little_a before_o we_o may_v confess_v that_o to_o be_v the_o church_n which_o we_o call_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n but_o and_o if_o thou_o will_v conclude_v hereby_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v unknowen_a we_o will_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o firm_a conclusion_n because_o there_o be_v proper_a mark_n assign_v by_o which_o the_o same_o may_v be_v very_o well_o know_v and_o be_v discern_v from_o profane_a conventicle_n for_o wheresoever_o the_o pureness_n of_o doctrine_n flourish_v know_v the_o mark_n by_o which_o the_o church_n may_v be_v know_v the_o sacrament_n be_v pure_o minister_v and_o discipline_n exercise_v thou_o have_v a_o congregation_n whereunto_o thou_o may_v safe_o join_v thyself_o although_o the_o honesty_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n be_v not_o sufficient_o know_v unto_o thou_o neither_o be_v it_o of_o necessity_n require_v that_o the_o godly_a shall_v be_v discern_v of_o man_n what_o manner_n of_o person_n they_o be_v while_o they_o live_v here_o christ_n while_o he_o live_v here_o among_o mortal_a man_n be_v not_o know_v and_o we_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v declare_v unto_o the_o colossian_n 3_o col._n 3._o 3_o the_o three_o chapter_n have_v our_o life_n hide_v in_o god_n and_o when_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v than_o we_o also_o shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a with_o he_o in_o glory_n again_o we_o read_v in_o the_o first_o of_o samuel_n 7._o 1._o sa._n 16._o 7._o it_o be_v god_n that_o look_v into_o the_o heart_n but_o man_n only_o know_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v apparent_a i_o know_v there_o be_v a_o fable_n spread_v abroad_o christ_n against_o they_o which_o say_v that_o the_o wicked_a be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o wicked_a be_v member_n of_o christ_n howbeit_o dead_a member_n which_o nevertheless_o may_v be_v quicken_v but_o this_o be_v even_o as_o true_a as_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v that_o a_o dead_a man_n be_v a_o man_n we_o will_v confess_v in_o deed_n that_o by_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o may_v be_v restore_v unto_o life_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n while_o that_o be_v not_o do_v
of_o sin_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n for_o they_o have_v a_o respect_n of_o justice_n for_o so_o do_v god_n oftentimes_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n raise_v up_o a_o ungodlie_a prince_n but_o although_o he_o be_v ungodlie_a he_o must_v be_v obey_v obey_v after_o what_o sort_n wicked_a king_n must_v be_v obey_v howbeit_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o religion_n shall_v permit_v and_o if_o he_o shall_v command_v ungodlie_a thing_n he_o must_v not_o be_v hear_v neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a with_o silence_n to_o dissemble_v any_o thing_n that_o the_o king_n do_v perverslie_o and_o ungodlie_a we_o ought_v to_o warn_v counsel_n reproove_v chasten_v and_o amend_v he_o for_o so_o do_v the_o prophet_n also_o for_o defence_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n we_o must_v obey_v without_o exception_n therefore_o cicero_n cato_n pompeius_n and_o other_o must_v not_o be_v blame_v who_o take_v war_n in_o hand_n against_o caesar_n but_o when_o he_o have_v once_o attain_v to_o the_o empire_n no_o private_a man_n ought_v to_o have_v take_v arm_n against_o he_o therefore_o when_o augustus_n caesar_n have_v hear_v rail_v word_n to_o be_v speak_v against_o marcus_n cato_n be_v now_o dead_a because_o he_o deal_v tyrannous_o against_o julius_n answer_v that_o cato_n be_v a_o good_a citizen_n in_o that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o present_a state_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n to_o be_v change_v so_o that_o god_n reign_v together_o with_o king_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n 44._o king_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n psal_n 18._o 44._o and_o king_n may_v be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n for_o so_o david_n write_v of_o himself_o thou_o have_v set_v i_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o nation_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o proper_o but_o metaphoricallie_o call_v head_n for_o even_o as_o from_o the_o head_n be_v derive_v all_o the_o sense_n and_o motion_n into_o the_o body_n so_o the_o sense_n by_o good_a law_n and_o motion_n by_o edict_n and_o commandment_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o prince_n unto_o the_o people_n and_o this_o strength_n exceed_v not_o the_o natural_a power_n 2_o now_o as_o touch_v the_o other_o question_n none_o may_v after_o this_o manner_n be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n church_n no_o mortal_a man_n may_v be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o here_o the_o consideration_n be_v far_o otherwise_o than_o in_o a_o common_a weal_n for_o the_o church_n be_v a_o celestial_a divine_a and_o spiritual_a body_n sense_n can_v be_v give_v unto_o she_o by_o no_o mortal_a man_n for_o those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o such_o sort_n as_o neither_o ear_n have_v hear_v 9_o esa_n 64._o 4._o 2._o cor._n 2._o 9_o nor_o eye_n have_v see_v neither_o have_v they_o ascend_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n for_o all_o quicken_a of_o the_o church_n proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o as_o they_o which_o will_v raise_v up_o unto_o we_o a_o new_a head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o well_o advise_v what_o they_o say_v for_o regeneration_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n do_v flow_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o from_o man_n 15_o only_o christ_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n ephe._n 4._o 15_o also_o the_o scripture_n do_v sufficient_o testify_v that_o christ_n alone_o be_v give_v to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n say_v christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n by_o who_o all_o the_o member_n by_o order_n of_o assistance_n make_v increase_v of_o the_o body_n and_o unto_o the_o colossian_n 19_o col._n 2._o 19_o speak_v of_o hypocrite_n they_o hold_v not_o say_v he_o the_o head_n whereby_o all_o the_o body_n be_v knit_v together_o by_o synowe_v &_o jointe_n and_o again_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n let_v we_o therefore_o grow_v up_o in_o he_o which_o be_v the_o head_n 15_o ephe._n 4._o 15_o namely_o christ_n so_o that_o every_o sense_n and_o move_n of_o the_o church_n flow_v from_o christ_n alone_o not_o from_o any_o mortal_a man_n but_o thou_o will_v object_v objection_n a_o objection_n that_o prince_n undoubted_o can_v engender_v civil_a virtue_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o their_o people_n wherefore_o the_o reason_n on_o both_o part_n be_v a_o like_a diverse_a the_o consideration_n of_o the_o church_n and_o common_a weal_n be_v diverse_a yes_o very_o they_o can_v for_o that_o do_v not_o exceed_v the_o power_n of_o nature_n for_o virtue_n spring_v of_o frequent_v action_n so_o when_o as_o prince_n by_o law_n and_o edict_n drive_v their_o subject_n unto_o action_n they_o also_o drive_v they_o unto_o virtue_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o regeneration_n be_v not_o attain_v by_o many_o action_n but_o only_o by_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n for_o these_o gift_n of_o god_n flow_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o jointe_n and_o synowe_v that_o be_v by_o preacher_n and_o minister_n for_o their_o part_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n to_o excommunicate_a offender_n and_o to_o reconcile_v the_o penitent_a for_o albeit_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o do_v he_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o these_o man_n aristocratia_fw-la whether_o in_o the_o church_n may_v be_v a_o outward_a head_n that_o shall_v govern_v the_o minister_n the_o order_n institute_v by_o christ_n must_v not_o be_v change_v aristocratia_fw-la 3_o but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o although_o the_o inward_a sense_n and_o move_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o christ_n yet_o there_o may_v be_v a_o outward_a head_n to_o rule_v minister_n and_o to_o keep_v they_o all_o in_o their_o duty_n there_o may_v not_o be_v neither_o undoubted_o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o change_v the_o order_n appoint_v by_o god_n for_o god_n will_v that_o in_o the_o church_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o government_n of_o the_o best_a man_n that_o bishop_n shall_v take_v the_o charge_n of_o all_o these_o thing_n &_o shall_v choose_v minister_n yet_o so_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o people_n shall_v not_o be_v exclude_v minister_n that_o bishop_n be_v to_o choose_v minister_n but_o even_o as_o the_o israelite_n cast_v away_o the_o government_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v make_v themselves_o a_o king_n even_o so_o they_o that_o will_v have_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v cast_v away_o christ_n the_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n say_v 11._o eph._n 4_o 11._o that_o christ_n give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n some_o teacher_n for_o edify_v of_o the_o church_n neither_o add_v he_o that_o he_o set_v one_o over_o all_o these_o person_n who_o command_v these_o man_n to_o alter_v this_o order_n further_n when_o mathias_n be_v to_o be_v substitute_v in_o the_o place_n of_o judas_n 15._o acts._n 1._o 15._o 3._o acts._n 6._o 3._o and_o when_o deacon_n shall_v be_v create_v the_o matter_n be_v refer_v not_o unto_o the_o pope_n but_o unto_o the_o people_n beside_o this_o bishop_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n if_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v be_v the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n or_o the_o universal_a bishop_n which_o thing_n no_o reason_n will_v bear_v but_o least_o that_o the_o papist_n shall_v think_v that_o there_o be_v small_a weight_n in_o my_o word_n let_v they_o hear_v gregory_n the_o chief_a of_o all_o pope_n matter_n argument_n of_o pope_n gregory_n touch_v this_o matter_n he_o in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o the_o register_n in_o the_o epistle_n unto_o mauricius_n the_o emperor_n unto_o constantia_n the_o empress_n unto_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n alexandria_n antioch_n and_o unto_o john_n of_o constantinople_n write_v at_o large_a of_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v comprise_v his_o argument_n in_o as_o few_o word_n as_o i_o can_v there_o can_v say_v he_o be_v one_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o if_o peradventure_o that_o head_n shall_v fall_v into_o any_o heresy_n it_o will_v of_o necessity_n be_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v be_v corrupt_v and_o that_o the_o same_o head_n may_v be_v corrupt_v nestorius_n and_o macedonius_n may_v be_v a_o trial_n who_o sometime_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n the_o one_o of_o these_o affirm_v distinct_a person_n to_o be_v in_o christ_n the_o other_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v god_n furthermore_o if_o there_o may_v be_v one_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v it_o will_v of_o necessity_n be_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o other_o bishop_n shall_v be_v derive_v unto_o he_o but_o that_o will_v be_v absurd_a therefore_o cyprian_n say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o bishopric_n whereof_o
januarie_n i_o answer_v not_o before_o because_o i_o receive_v they_o in_o the_o calends_n of_o march_n neither_o have_v we_o any_o store_n of_o convenient_a carrier_n at_o tigure_n now_o must_v you_o persuade_v yourself_o of_o this_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o gréeve_v you_o and_o such_o as_o you_o be_v do_v also_o very_o much_o gréeve_v i_o &_o my_o brethren_n to_o answer_v again_o unto_o your_o question_n i_o think_v it_o not_o much_o needful_a because_o i_o think_v that_o all_o my_o letter_n come_v unto_o you_o whereunto_o i_o have_v answer_v as_o i_o can_v not_o perhaps_o so_o much_o as_o the_o matter_n require_v or_o somuch_o as_o you_o yourself_o desire_v yet_o i_o say_v that_o which_o seem_v then_o to_o serve_v to_o the_o purpose_n that_o which_o you_o fear_v we_o can_v turn_v away_o from_o you_o otherwise_o than_o by_o prayer_n which_o believe_v i_o we_o careful_o do_v and_o will_v do_v final_o to_o come_v to_o your_o last_o question_n crucifix_n the_o image_n of_o the_o crucifix_n namely_o to_o have_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o crucifix_n upon_o the_o holy_a table_n while_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v minister_v i_o do_v not_o account_v it_o among_o thing_n indifferent_a neither_o will_v i_o advise_v any_o man_n to_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n with_o that_o rite_n howbeit_o you_o that_o be_v in_o the_o very_a conflict_n look_v not_o for_o counsel_v from_o hence_o for_o we_o be_v far_o from_o you_o consult_v upon_o your_o own_o ground_n a_o vocation_n be_v not_o light_o to_o be_v cast_v off_o nor_o yet_o to_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n with_o injury_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o be_v brief_a the_o worship_v of_o image_n must_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v suffer_v neither_o do_v master_n bullinger_n nor_o i_o account_v such_o for_o indifferent_a thing_n nay_o rather_o we_o refuse_v they_o as_o thing_n forbid_v howbeit_o except_o you_o be_v compel_v to_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o you_o refuse_v the_o ministry_n which_o be_v free_o offer_v to_o you_o as_o concern_v the_o write_n of_o letter_n to_o the_o queen_n about_o this_o matter_n this_o much_o understande_v that_o i_o be_o now_o so_o overwhelm_v with_o business_n as_o though_o i_o have_v never_o so_o much_o mind_n to_o do_v it_o yet_o i_o can_v for_o these_o two_o month_n together_o i_o alone_o teach_v in_o the_o school_n and_o i_o judge_v that_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o to_o be_v commit_v unto_o letter_n and_o beside_o this_o i_o think_v that_o my_o letter_n will_v be_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n true_o i_o have_v write_v twice_o publiklie_o and_o private_o neither_o can_v i_o understand_v whether_o the_o thing_n that_o i_o write_v be_v well_o accept_v furthermore_o if_o it_o be_v the_o determination_n of_o your_o man_n as_o it_o be_v report_v that_o they_o will_v embrace_v the_o confession_n make_v at_o augusta_n and_o that_o they_o covet_v the_o league_n of_o the_o protestant_n you_o yourself_o may_v consider_v of_o what_o credit_n my_o letter_n and_o the_o letter_n of_o such_o as_o i_o be_o will_v be_v account_v that_o one_o thing_n which_o i_o can_v i_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o do_v namely_o to_o pray_v that_o your_o kingdom_n and_o church_n together_o with_o your_o most_o mighty_a queen_n may_v most_o happy_o live_v in_o christ_n notwithstanding_o as_o you_o will_v i_o i_o have_v deal_v in_o the_o cause_n with_o master_n bernardine_n he_o be_v sickly_a both_o by_o reason_n of_o age_n and_o through_o the_o disease_n that_o come_v upon_o old_a man_n yet_o he_o refuse_v not_o the_o labour_n of_o write_v but_o promise_v to_o do_v it_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a i_o doubt_v not_o of_o bullinger_n but_o that_o he_o will_v write_v for_o he_o be_v very_o well_o encourage_v in_o this_o matter_n although_o he_o have_v read_v your_o letter_n he_o have_v not_o yet_o show_v i_o any_o thing_n whereof_o i_o may_v give_v you_o to_o understand_v fare_v you_o well_o bullinger_n all_o the_o fellow_n minister_n my_o wife_n and_o julius_n with_o his_o wife_n salute_v you_o a_o son_n be_v bear_v unto_o i_o the_o 2._o of_o march_n and_o die_v the_o 10._o day_n of_o march._n salute_v in_o my_o name_n all_o your_o friend_n and_o cease_v not_o to_o love_v your_o martyr_n the_o 20._o of_o march_n 1560._o to_o a_o certain_a friend_n of_o he_o 42._o i_o very_o well_o know_v by_o your_o letter_n my_o godly_a and_o learned_a friend_n and_o my_o most_o belove_a in_o the_o lord_n that_o you_o through_o understande_v my_o meaning_n as_o touch_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n wherefore_o i_o shall_v the_o less_o need_n to_o make_v answer_n to_o your_o most_o courteous_a &_o learned_a epistle_n the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n as_o you_o right_o gather_v be_v whither_o according_a to_o the_o increase_n of_o faith_n which_o both_o of_o we_o agree_v to_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o eucharist_n christ_n whether_o we_o by_o the_o increase_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o more_o incorporate_v into_o christ_n we_o be_v more_o unite_v or_o incorpora●…_n unto_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o by_o he_o unto_o god_n which_o i_o affirm_v but_o you_o deny_v as_o think_v that_o although_o our_o faith_n increase_v yet_o that_o conjunction_n which_o we_o have_v wish_v christ_n be_v not_o for_o that_o cause_n increase_v thereby_o but_o i_o mind_v to_o confirm_v my_o opinion_n increase_v that_o our_o conjunction_n in_o christ_n be_v increase_v think_v it_o very_o requisite_a to_o bring_v forth_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o which_o our_o increase_n in_o christ_n be_v most_o manifest_o declare_v paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n the_o 3._o chapter_n say_v 19_o ephe._n 3._o 19_o that_o you_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o fullness_n of_o god_n by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v open_v and_o teach_v that_o unto_o the_o faithful_a belong_v every_o day_n to_o be_v fulfil_v and_o perfect_v but_o the_o same_o apostle_n testify_v that_o it_o be_v christ_n alone_o by_o who_o we_o be_v fulfil_v and_o perfect_v yea_o it_o be_v he_o who_o be_v both_o fulfil_v and_o perfect_v in_o us._n for_o we_o read_v in_o the_o very_a same_o epistle_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o fullness_n of_o he_o that_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o thing_n 23._o ephe._n 1._o 23._o that_o while_n one_o member_n of_o this_o body_n be_v augment_v christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v increase_v in_o it_o that_o be_v become_v great_a and_o more_o near_o unto_o it_o in_o the_o 4._o of_o the_o same_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n it_o be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o church_n apostles_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n who_o in_o very_a deed_n do_v not_o deal_v but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o sacrament_n for_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o saint_n into_o the_o work_n of_o the_o administration_n into_o the_o edify_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 14._o eph._n 4._o ver_fw-la 11._o 12._o 13._o &_o 14._o until_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o into_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n unto_o the_o measure_n of_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n that_o hence_o forth_o we_o may_v be_v no_o more_o child_n hereunto_o therefore_o may_v these_o ministery_n of_o the_o church_n and_o sacrament_n be_v say_v to_o pertain_v that_o every_o man_n may_v be_v strengthen_v in_o his_o vocation_n &_o ministry_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o always_o live_v a_o unperfect_a age_n but_o be_v increase_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v make_v at_o the_o length_n of_o full_a age_n and_o perfect_a stature_n that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o babishe_a and_o childish_a member_n of_o the_o perfect_a and_o manly_a head_n i_o mean_v of_o christ_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o augmentation_n of_o the_o member_n to_o be_v appoint_v than_o that_o christ_n himself_o shall_v be_v amplify_v and_o make_v great_a in_o every_o of_o his_o member_n and_o this_o be_v do_v if_o the_o faithful_a be_v every_o day_n make_v more_o partaker_n of_o he_o and_o straight_o way_n after_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v but_o we_o follow_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n let_v we_o in_o all_o thing_n grow_v up_o unto_o he_o who_o be_v the_o head_n that_o be_v christ_n and_o he_o add_v in_o who_o all_o the_o body_n be_v couple_v and_o knit_v together_o by_o every_o joint_n for_o the_o furniture_n thereof_o according_a to_o the_o effectual_a power_n in_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o part_n receive_v increase_v of_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o itself_o in_o love_n in_o this_o place_n also_o we_o hear_v of_o a_o increase_n of_o the_o body_n as_o touch_v each_o part_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n thereof_o and_o the_o manner_n of_o
to_o wit_n impudicicitie_n for_o wantoness_n longanimitie_n for_o long_a suffering_n praecursor_n for_o forerunner_n euangelize_n for_o preach_v the_o good_a tiding_n of_o the_o gospel_n azym_v for_o unlevened_a bread_n parasceve_fw-la for_o the_o day_n of_o preparation_n scandalize_v for_o offend_v contristate_n for_o make_v sorry_a propiciat_a for_o make_v reconciliation_n depositum_fw-la for_o a_o thing_n commit_v to_o the_o hand_n of_o another_o victim_n for_o sacrifice_n prepuce_fw-la for_o uncircumcision_n contradict_v for_o speak_v against_o resuscitate_a for_o stir_v up_o holocaust_n for_o burn_a offering_n by_o juncture_n of_o subministration_n for_o by_o join_v together_o of_o that_o which_o serve_v etc._n etc._n and_o infinite_a other_o such_o obscure_a and_o new_a invent_a word_n which_o may_v easy_o enough_o with_o some_o small_a periphrasis_n without_o hindrance_n of_o the_o sense_n have_v be_v put_v in_o plain_a english_a that_o can_v make_v good_a any_o of_o your_o heathenish_a superstition_n what_o need_v the_o common_a people_n be_v now_o set_v to_o school_v to_o their_o die_a day_n before_o they_o can_v learn_v that_o out_o of_o latin_a by_o strange_a and_o difficult_a word_n which_o already_o they_o know_v as_o perfect_o as_o their_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la in_o plain_a english_a with_o a_o long_o acquaint_v custom_n be_v this_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n manner_n of_o teach_v do_v they_o not_o speak_v in_o the_o plain_a term_n they_o can_v possible_o devise_v to_o make_v those_o who_o they_o speak_v unto_o understand_v they_o do_v not_o babe_n and_o suckling_n understand_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n himself_o speak_v be_v not_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n send_v down_o to_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v interpret_v every_o thing_n to_o every_o man_n in_o their_o own_o natural_a language_n wherefore_o be_v you_o better_o advise_v hereafter_o in_o accuse_v of_o our_o translation_n before_o you_o have_v purge_v and_o perfect_v your_o own_o and_o before_o your_o gain_n in_o this_o matter_n may_v be_v comparable_a to_o the_o travel_n that_o you_o have_v take_v therein_o now_o then_o since_o all_o these_o translation_n of_o we_o have_v be_v do_v by_o faithful_a learned_a and_o godly_a man_n and_o of_o a_o good_a sincere_a and_o godly_a purpose_n we_o praise_v god_n perpetuallie_o and_o commend_v the_o good_a endeavour_n of_o they_o and_o we_o most_o humble_o and_o earnest_o desire_v of_o god_n that_o because_o there_o be_v no_o perfect_a wisdom_n nor_o knowledge_n in_o man_n unless_o it_o be_v give_v from_o above_o and_o that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o mortal_a man_n that_o without_o the_o assist_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n so_o true_o and_o exact_o but_o other_o after_o they_o may_v find_v some_o imperfection_n therein_o it_o will_v please_v he_o for_o his_o son_n sake_n to_o lighten_v continual_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n of_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v daily_o put_v to_o their_o help_a hand_n to_o the_o perfect_a polish_n of_o this_o excellent_a translation_n and_o let_v we_o magnify_v the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o have_v turn_v the_o envy_n of_o you_o which_o be_v our_o adversary_n to_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o own_o glory_n the_o increase_n of_o our_o diligence_n the_o refutation_n of_o your_o error_n and_o benefit_n of_o his_o church_n for_o you_o hate_v we_o unmercifullie_o because_o we_o deliver_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unto_o all_o the_o people_n indifferent_o to_o be_v read_v in_o their_o own_o mother_n tongue_n and_o yet_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o same_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v detain_v from_o they_o have_v even_o against_o your_o own_o will_n in_o some_o respect_n set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o so_o by_o the_o selfsame_o sword_n wherewith_o you_o think_v to_o have_v destroy_v we_o you_o have_v pierce_v your_o own_o bowel_n confound_v yourselves_o overthrow_v your_o own_o counterfeit_n and_o false_a doctrine_n and_o maruellouslie_o establish_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o herein_o moreover_o be_v we_o behold_v to_o god_n though_o not_o unto_o you_o which_o mean_v not_o thereby_o either_o to_o pleasure_v we_o or_o to_o edify_v the_o people_n insomuch_o as_o by_o the_o narrow_a sift_v which_o you_o have_v make_v of_o our_o opinion_n and_o translation_n we_o know_v the_o very_a uttermost_a which_o you_o be_v able_a to_o breath_n and_o braie_v out_o against_o us._n and_o that_o by_o this_o mean_n if_o yet_o there_o remain_v any_o thing_n that_o lie_v in_o our_o power_n to_o perform_v which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v neglect_v we_o may_v run_v thereunto_o with_o all_o willingness_n of_o heart_n till_o at_o length_n we_o come_v to_o that_o principal_a mark_n whereunto_o we_o tend_v with_o all_o our_o desire_n and_o godly_a endeavour_n moreover_o you_o contend_v more_o vehementlie_o for_o all_o those_o opinion_n of_o you_o which_o we_o deny_v than_o do_v the_o ancient_a father_n with_o the_o montanist_n marcionite_n arrian_n and_o other_o damnable_a sect_n which_o deny_v the_o true_a humanity_n or_o divinity_n of_o christ_n or_o as_o though_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v as_o plain_o and_o preciselie_o command_v those_o thing_n as_o it_o do_v every_o other_o thing_n that_o you_o and_o we_o both_o alike_o confess_v and_o yet_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o set_v down_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o scripture_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n give_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o word_n or_o sign_n of_o any_o such_o opinion_n if_o your_o opinion_n have_v be_v of_o necessity_n to_o believe_v as_o you_o pretend_v unto_o we_o that_o they_o be_v or_o if_o so_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n have_v be_v that_o we_o shall_v embrace_v they_o will_v the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n so_o weighty_a matter_n and_o for_o the_o which_o he_o know_v so_o great_a controversy_n shall_v afterward_o arise_v between_o the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o false_a will_v our_o merciful_a god_n that_o so_o tender_o love_v his_o elect_a and_o so_o desirouslie_o will_v have_v they_o all_o to_o be_v save_v and_o who_o suffer_v not_o his_o truth_n to_o fail_v nor_o his_o gospel_n to_o be_v hide_v from_o any_o but_o from_o they_o that_o perish_v will_v he_o i_o say_v hide_v from_o his_o own_o any_o of_o the_o necessary_a principle_n of_o religion_n if_o he_o keep_v nothing_o back_o from_o the_o ephesian_n but_o show_v they_o even_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n will_v he_o be_v any_o thing_n less_o merciful_a unto_o we_o than_o he_o be_v unto_o they_o by_o not_o show_v to_o we_o in_o his_o write_a word_n that_o which_o by_o epistle_n and_o preach_v the_o spirit_n teach_v unto_o they_o no_o very_o but_o what_o he_o show_v unto_o they_o that_o have_v he_o show_v we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v plain_o teach_v we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n wherefore_o lie_v aside_o all_o maliciousness_n and_o hatred_n towards_o we_o and_o discern_v with_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o a_o single_a eye_n what_o the_o good_a and_o acceptable_a will_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v again_o you_o will_v make_v the_o authority_n of_o your_o church_n to_o be_v far_o great_a than_o the_o authority_n of_o we_o because_o of_o a_o great_a consent_n of_o many_o prelate_n and_o bishop_n you_o weigh_v not_o that_o there_o be_v neither_o authority_n nor_o council_n nor_o conspiracy_n nor_o consent_n nor_o custom_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o will_n and_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v of_o any_o force_n we_o know_v that_o a_o other_o foundation_n beside_o christ_n jesus_n which_o be_v already_o lay_v can_v no_o man_n lay_v and_o therefore_o the_o true_a builder_n will_v build_v no_o other_o matter_n upon_o that_o foundation_n but_o such_o as_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o rock_n christ_n jesus_n but_o you_o have_v build_v your_o own_o vile_a trash_n upon_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o the_o matter_n be_v such_o as_o neither_o christ_n command_v to_o build_v with_o nor_o any_o of_o his_o servant_n long_o after_o he_o use_v nor_o yet_o be_v answerable_a to_o the_o same_o foundation_n we_o conclude_v that_o neither_o your_o church_n be_v christ_n church_n nor_o yet_o the_o builder_n thereof_o the_o lord_n builder_n but_o we_o for_o our_o part_n have_v a_o more_o certain_a and_o assure_a word_n of_o pprophecy_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o church_n and_o whereby_o we_o take_v not_o upon_o we_o to_o work_v the_o lord_n work_v with_o any_o other_o stuff_n than_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v appoint_v we_o build_v altogether_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n corner_n stone_n and_o we_o finish_v the_o temple_n even_o according_a to_o that_o pattern_n which_o be_v no_o no_o less_o evident_o set_v down_o in_o the_o everlasting_a testament_n
place_n of_o the_o four_o part_n albeit_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o only_a bond_n that_o we_o have_v with_o christ_n and_o the_o most_o assure_a pledge_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o a_o undoubted_a preserver_n of_o all_o thing_n yet_o use_v he_o thereunto_o diverse_a and_o those_o external_a instrument_n for_o into_o the_o church_n he_o gather_v the_o elect_a and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o also_o by_o the_o bond_n and_o help_n of_o discipline_n he_o beget_v we_o unto_o christ_n and_o he_o feed_v and_o preserve_v we_o unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o herewithal_o he_o raise_v up_o and_o use_v magistrate_n as_o well_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o man_n society_n and_o public_a honesty_n as_o also_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o piety_n and_o service_n of_o god_n so_o than_o this_o last_o part_n comprehend_v a_o explication_n of_o these_o place_n the_o chapter_n and_o common_a place_n of_o the_o four_o part_n chapter_n i_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n pag._n 1._o of_o sundry_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o of_o call_v to_o the_o ministry_n pag._n 9_o of_o the_o dignity_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 15._o of_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n pag._n 16._o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o ministry_n 21._o of_o the_o mighty_a simpleness_n of_o the_o ministry_n pag._n 25._o chapter_n two_o of_o receive_v or_o refuse_v of_o reward_n gift_n and_o office_n especial_o by_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 28._o of_o the_o immunity_n of_o ecclesiastical_a man_n pag._n 32._o chapter_n iii_o whether_o there_o may_v be_v two_o head_n of_o the_o church_n one_o visible_a and_o a_o other_o invisible_a pag._n 35._o chapter_n four_o of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n pag._n 41._o a_o exposition_n of_o the_o place_n to_o obey_v be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n expound_v pag._n 44._o of_o tradition_n pag._n 45._o of_o discern_v of_o spirit_n ibidem_fw-la of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o counsel_n father_n and_o canon_n pag._n 46._o chapter_n five_o of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n pag._n 56._o of_o excommunication_n pag._n 57_o of_o order_n and_o comeliness_n in_o the_o church_n pag._n 65._o of_o temple_n and_o their_o ornament_n ibid._n chapter_n vi_o of_o schism_n and_o whether_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v schismatics_n pag._n 68_o what_o be_v become_v of_o they_o which_o in_o time_n past_o die_v in_o the_o pope_n religion_n 91._o chapter_n vii_o of_o sacrament_n in_o general_a pag._n 96._o of_o circumcision_n pag._n 107._o chapter_n viii_o of_o baptism_n baptise_v of_o infant_n and_o holiness_n of_o they_o pag._n 120._o chapter_n ix_o of_o the_o dedication_n of_o temple_n the_o baptise_v of_o bell_n of_o oil_n salt_n spittle_n wax_n and_o other_o papistical_a corruption_n about_o baptism_n pag._n 123._o of_o papistical_a holy_a water_n pag._n 138._o chapter_n x_o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n with_o a_o preface_n before_o the_o same_o pag._n 147._o a_o epitome_n of_o the_o disputation_n of_o the_o eucharist_n against_o steeven_n gardiner_n 198._o chapter_n xi_o of_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n pag._n 204._o chapter_n xii_o of_o the_o mass_n pag._n 215._o of_o sacrifice_n pag._n 220._o another_o common_a place_n of_o sacrifice_n 223._o of_o altar_n pag._n 225_o chapter_n xiii_o of_o a_o magistrate_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o civil_a &_o ecclesiastical_a power_n 226._o of_o tenthes_o pag._n 235._o chapter_n xiiii_o of_o the_o office_n of_o magistrate_n especial_o in_o exercise_v of_o judgement_n pag._n 245._o that_o the_o charge_n of_o religion_n belong_v to_o prince_n pag._n 246._o of_o the_o clemency_n of_o prince_n pag._n 248._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o magistrate_n to_o let_v the_o guilty_a go_v unpunished_a ibidem_fw-la whether_o the_o excuse_n of_o david_n in_o not_o punish_v of_o joab_n may_v be_v allow_v 256._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o release_v just_a punishment_n which_o be_v enjoin_v by_o law_n pag._n 260._o of_o execution_n and_o hangman_n pag._n 264._o of_o sanctuary_n pag._n 265._o chapter_n xv_o of_o exile_n or_o banishment_n pag._n 270._o chapter_n xvi_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o christian_n man_n to_o go_v to_o law_n pag._n 275._o chapter_n xvii_o of_o war_n or_o battle_n pag._n 280._o whether_o unto_o a_o just_a war_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v always_o require_v pag._n 284._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o godly_a to_o have_v peace_n with_o the_o ungodlie_a pag._n 294._o of_o fence_n and_o of_o spial_n pag._n 296._o of_o treason_n pag._n 297._o chapter_n xviii_o whether_o captive_n ought_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n or_o save_v pag._n 300._o of_o thing_n which_o be_v take_v by_o the_o right_n of_o war_n pag._n 303._o chapter_n xix_o of_o a_o several_a combat_n hand_n to_o hand_n 308._o chapter_n xx_o of_o nobility_n pag._n 311._o of_o bondage_n pag._n 313._o of_o debtor_n pag._n 315._o of_o occupieng_v of_o merchandise_n 317._o chapter_n xxi_o of_o trouble_n and_o sedition_n pag._n 319._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o subject_n to_o rise_v against_o their_o prince_n pag._n 324._o whether_o jehoiadah_n do_v right_a in_o put_v athalia_fw-la from_o the_o kingdom_n pag._n 325._o of_o endure_v of_o tyranny_n by_o godly_a man_n pag._n 328._o the_o content_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v add_v to_o this_o book_n of_o common_a place_n be_v set_v down_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o part_n certain_a fault_n escape_v there_o be_v no_o garden_n so_o well_o trim_v but_o have_v some_o weed_n no_o silver_n so_o well_o try_v but_o have_v some_o dross_n no_o wine_n so_o well_o fine_v but_o have_v some_o lose_fw-mi no_o honey_n so_o well_o clarify_v but_o have_v some_o dregs_n final_o no_o humane_a action_n but_o have_v some_o defect_n marvel_v not_o then_o good_a reader_n that_o in_o so_o huge_a a_o volume_n consist_v of_o so_o many_o leaf_n line_n and_o letter_n oftentimes_o vary_v both_o in_o form_n and_o matter_n a_o fault_n or_o two_o do_v escape_n be_v the_o corrector_n care_v never_o so_o great_a his_o diligence_n never_o so_o earnest_a his_o labour_n never_o so_o continual_a his_o eye_n never_o so_o quick_a his_o judgement_n never_o so_o sound_a his_o memory_n never_o so_o firm_a breeflie_o all_o his_o sense_n never_o so_o active_a and_o livelie_a such_o fault_n therefore_o as_o be_v pass_v be_v but_o few_o in_o number_n if_o it_o please_v you_o in_o read_v favourablie_o to_o amend_v according_a as_o they_o be_v here_o correct_v yourselves_o shall_v be_v profit_v and_o i_o satisfy_v fault_n correction_n part._n page_n colum._n line_n they_o men._n 1_o 143_o 2_o 19_o anger_n pride_n 2_o 529_o 2_o 49_o father_n father_n 2_o 600_o 1_o 25_o renew_v remove_v 4_o 59_o 1_o 58_o whoredom_n idolatry_n 4_o 245_o 1_o 11_o lord_n my_o my_o lord_n in_o the_o addition_n 113_o 2_o 10_o these_o be_v think_v necessary_a to_o be_v note_v other_o if_o any_o be_v i_o refer_v unto_o your_o own_o self_n that_o shall_v take_v pain_n to_o peruse_v the_o whole_a book_n advisedlie_o the_o common_a place_n of_o the_o famous_a and_o renown_a divine_a peter_n martyr_n vermilius_n a_o florentine_a select_v into_o four_o part_n out_o of_o his_o book_n and_o commentary_n honi_fw-fr soit_fw-fr mal_fw-fr y_fw-fr pense_fw-fr e_o r_o the_o first_o part_n wherein_o be_v principal_o entreat_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n of_o the_o end_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n among_o the_o christian_n the_o first_o chapter_n 25._o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o rom._n chap._n 8_o verse_n 25._o augustine_n in_o his_o 19_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o four_o chapter_n very_o well_o declare_v how_o christian_a hope_n be_v carry_v unto_o those_o good_a thing_n thing_n hope_n be_v carry_v to_o invisible_a thing_n which_o can_v be_v see_v for_o if_o thou_o ask_v say_v he_o a_o faithful_a man_n what_o he_o make_v to_o be_v the_o end_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a thing_n he_o will_v answer_v life_n and_o death_n everlasting_a put_v the_o end_n that_o a_o faithful_a man_n put_v which_o thing_n can_v not_o be_v see_v nor_o comprehend_v by_o man_n reason_n and_o therefore_o the_o wise_a man_n among_o the_o ethnike_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n will_v not_o settle_v their_o hope_n upon_o those_o thing_n for_o which_o cause_n some_o hold_v that_o the_o end_n of_o good_a thing_n be_v the_o good_n of_o the_o mind_n some_o the_o good_n of_o the_o body_n and_o some_o either_o virtue_n pleasure_n or_o both_o join_v together_o but_o god_n laugh_v they_o to_o scorn_v and_o see_v how_o vain_a their_o cogitation_n be_v for_o they_o will_v rather_o account_v those_o thing_n for_o the_o chief_a good_a which_o be_v temper_v with_o many_o misery_n and_o calamity_n than_o to_o receive_v those_o sincere_a perfect_a and_o most_o firm_a
easy_o be_v understand_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o speak_v concern_v the_o cause_n 6_o but_o heavenly_a inspiration_n be_v not_o communicate_v to_o all_o the_o prophet_n alike_o prophet_n degree_n of_o prophet_n for_o some_o see_v more_o and_o some_o less_o in_o the_o 12._o of_o the_o book_n of_o number_n god_n say_v 6._o num._n 12_o 6._o that_o he_o do_v insinuate_v himself_o to_o other_o prophet_n after_o diverse_a fashion_n but_o that_o he_o present_v himself_o unto_o moses_n mouth_n to_o mouth_n and_o face_n to_o face_n 10_o deut._n 34_o 10_o and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o deuteronomie_n it_o be_v write_v 11_o a_o comparison_n between_o moses_n and_o john_n baptist_n matt._n 11_o 11_o that_o after_o moses_n there_o be_v never_o the_o like_a prophet_n which_o yet_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o time_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n for_o otherwise_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n himself_o john_n baptist_n be_v great_a than_o moses_n for_o say_v he_o among_o the_o child_n of_o woman_n there_o arise_v not_o a_o great_a than_o john_n baptist_n for_o other_o prophet_n foretell_v that_o christ_n in_o time_n will_v come_v but_o he_o with_o his_o finger_n show_v he_o to_o be_v present_a and_o conversant_a among_o man_n we_o may_v also_o although_o somewhat_o rude_o thus_o distinguish_v the_o degree_n of_o prophecy_n if_o that_o we_o call_v one_o a_o oracle_n another_o a_o dream_n and_o a_o other_o a_o vision_n a_o oracle_n be_v vision_n what_o be_v a_o oracle_n a_o dream_n &_o a_o vision_n when_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n himself_o it_o be_v tell_v what_o we_o shall_v do_v so_o be_v abraham_n warn_v by_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o kill_v his_o son_n as_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o dream_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o example_n place_n of_o these_o thing_n read_v more_o in_o the_o next_o place_n they_o be_v plentiful_a in_o every_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o vision_n may_v be_v in_o three_o sort_n either_o when_o true_a thing_n be_v discern_v by_o a_o infuse_a light_n and_o by_o the_o mere_a understanding_n or_o else_o when_o beside_o that_o light_n image_n also_o be_v describe_v and_o that_o either_o in_o the_o mind_n 13._o zach._n 1_o 18._o and_o 4_o 2._o jerem._n 1_o 13._o as_o when_o zacharias_n see_v the_o horn_n and_o the_o candlestick_n and_o jeremie_n the_o pot_n or_o else_o in_o the_o eye_n and_o outward_a sense_n as_o be_v that_o hand_n speak_v of_o by_o daniel_n which_o appear_v on_o the_o wall_n and_o as_o that_o 5._o daniel_n 5_o 5._o when_o angel_n be_v see_v to_o talk_v with_o man_n in_o bodily_a shape_n of_o man_n time_n a_o difference_n in_o pprophecy_n according_a to_o time_n and_o in_o prophecy_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o time_n for_o some_o be_v before_o the_o law_n as_o be_v those_o of_o abraham_n noah_n enoch_n and_o adam_n some_o in_o the_o law_n as_o of_o moses_n and_o other_o some_o in_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o prophecy_n of_o many_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o this_o gift_n god_n deny_v not_o even_o to_o woman_n for_o we_o read_v of_o marie_n prophet_n woman_n prophet_n deborah_n and_o olda_n that_o be_v prophetess_n beside_o other_o woman_n and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n and_o other_o godly_a woman_n do_v prophesy_v and_o paul_n say_v that_o a_o woman_n pray_v or_o prophesieng_v 5._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 5._o shall_v cover_v her_o head_n but_o here_o 34_o how_o woman_n may_v prophesy_v they_o be_v forbid_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n 1._o cor._n 14_o 34_o by_o the_o way_n arise_v no_o small_a doubt_n for_o if_o at_o that_o time_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o woman_n to_o pray_v and_o prophesy_v open_o why_o do_v paul_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o to_o timothy_n admonish_v that_o a_o woman_n shall_v not_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n these_o two_o saieng_n although_o they_o may_v seem_v somewhat_o repugnant_a yet_o may_v they_o diverse_a way_n be_v reconcile_v some_o think_v that_o paul_n mean_v that_o a_o woman_n pray_v and_o prophesi_v when_o she_o be_v present_a and_o hear_v public_a prayer_n and_o prophesieng_n in_o the_o church_n direct_v by_o some_o godly_a and_o learned_a man_n other_o suppose_v that_o two_o error_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n even_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o same_o church_n begin_v the_o one_o that_o woman_n shall_v prophesy_v open_o and_o the_o other_o that_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o bareheaded_a and_o they_o think_v that_o paul_n confute_v the_o first_o error_n in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 11_o 5._o and_o the_o other_o in_o the_o 14._o and_o in_o the_o 2._o to_o timothy_n 11._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 11._o and_o that_o so_o paul_n altogether_o forbid_v that_o either_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o the_o congregation_n other_o some_o understand_v those_o word_n of_o paul_n as_o touch_v the_o ordinary_a ministry_n which_o by_o no_o mean_n must_v be_v permit_v to_o a_o woman_n but_o that_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a mean_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o woman_n sometime_o to_o prophesy_v as_o it_o be_v unto_o marie_n deborah_n olda_n and_o other_o of_o who_o we_o speak_v before_o the_o which_o if_o it_o do_v happen_v at_o any_o time_n they_o say_v that_o paul_n warn_v that_o a_o woman_n shall_v have_v her_o head_n cover_v other_o think_v that_o woman_n be_v quite_o forbid_v by_o paul_n to_o prophesy_v open_o but_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o do_v it_o privatlie_o so_o they_o cover_v their_o head_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v it_o import_v not_o much_o our_o purpose_n be_v only_o to_o teach_v that_o god_n do_v sometime_o impart_v this_o gift_n unto_o woman_n own_o prophet_n must_v not_o diminish_v the_o word_n nor_o add_v to_o of_o their_o own_o 7_o but_o above_o all_o thing_n prophet_n must_v beware_v that_o they_o corrupt_v not_o nor_o that_o they_o add_v not_o or_o diminish_v any_o thing_n for_o some_o otherwhile_o have_v receive_v the_o illumination_n of_o god_n do_v add_v over_o and_o beside_o of_o their_o own_o in_o the_o act_n certain_a holy_a man_n lighten_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n say_v 10._o acts._n 21_o 4._o and_o 10._o that_o many_o gréevous_a affliction_n be_v prepare_v for_o paul_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o this_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o speak_v true_o but_o they_o add_v other_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o for_o they_o give_v counsel_n unto_o paul_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n which_o thing_n they_o have_v not_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n good_a prophet_n ought_v not_o so_o to_o behave_v themselves_o for_o if_o they_o will_v mingle_v their_o own_o wisdom_n with_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n they_o may_v easy_o both_o be_v deceive_v themselves_o and_o also_o cause_v other_o to_o be_v deceive_v beside_o this_o 23._o prophet_n must_v not_o be_v corrupt_v for_o favour_n or_o reward_n num._n 22_o 23._o the_o prophet_n must_v take_v heed_n that_o they_o suffer_v not_o themselves_o to_o be_v corrupt_v either_o by_o money_n or_o favour_n as_o we_o read_v that_o balaam_n do_v for_o they_o which_o so_o do_v say_v jerome_n be_v not_o prophet_n but_o diviner_n as_o when_o logic_n be_v corrupt_a with_o error_n and_o fallaxis_n it_o be_v no_o long_a logic_n but_o sophistry_n for_o they_o which_o may_v be_v hire_v to_o speak_v in_o favour_n for_o reward_n sake_n be_v rather_o the_o divinors_n of_o idol_n than_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n and_o if_o they_o bear_v any_o office_n in_o the_o church_n they_o will_v soon_o infect_v their_o auditory_a with_o error_n and_o so_o both_o shall_v be_v cast_v headlong_o into_o the_o ditch_n further_o they_o must_v endeavour_v themselves_o by_o their_o life_n and_o manner_n to_o win_v credit_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n apparel_n by_o their_o life_n they_o must_v win_v credit_n to_o the_o word_n matth._n 3_o 4._o 2._o king_n 1_o 8._o a_o fond_a imitation_n of_o elias_n &_o john_n baptist_n in_o apparel_n this_o be_v think_v by_o some_o to_o consist_v in_o apparel_n and_o so_o they_o will_v imitate_v elias_n and_o john_n baptist_n and_o be_v apparel_v in_o camel_n hear_v and_o we_o be_v girdle_n of_o leather_n but_o this_o do_v the_o prophet_n by_o the_o instinct_n and_o warning_n of_o god_n to_o draw_v the_o people_n unto_o god_n by_o woonder_v at_o they_o contrariwise_o there_o be_v some_o which_o will_v abound_v in_o pleasure_n and_o excess_n and_o this_o we_o read_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o prisca_n and_o maximilla_n for_o they_o use_v paint_v colour_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o niceness_n prisca_n prisca_n wherefore_o a_o certain_a mean_a way_n must_v be_v use_v for_o offence_n may_v be_v commit_v on_o
earth_n there_o be_v also_o another_o psalm_n allege_v therefore_o have_v god_n even_o thy_o god_n anoint_v thou_o with_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n 9_o hebr._n 1_o 9_o and_o there_o be_v a_o comparison_n of_o christ_n with_o melchisedecke_n namely_o that_o they_o be_v both_o without_o father_n 3._o hebru_n 7_o 3._o without_o mother_n and_o without_o genealogy_n which_o thing_n accord_v not_o with_o christ_n but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o he_o be_v god_n unto_o the_o colossinas_n we_o read_v 9_o coloss_n 2_o 9_o that_o in_o christ_n dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a 16._o colo._n 1_o 16._o again_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o whether_o they_o be_v thing_n visible_a or_o invisible_a 13._o titus_n 2_o 13._o or_o throne_n or_o dominion_n unto_o titus_n we_o expect_v the_o bless_a hope_n and_o come_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o great_a god_n here_o christ_n be_v most_o plain_o call_v the_o great_a god_n and_o in_o the_o second_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 9_o 2._o cor._n 8_o 9_o when_o he_o be_v rich_a he_o be_v make_v poor_a for_o all_o man_n it_o can_v not_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o be_v rich_a but_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n 8._o 1._o cor._n 2_o 8._o and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n if_o they_o have_v know_v he_o they_o will_v never_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n 6._o 1._o cor._n 8_o 6._o to_o we_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v one_o god_n which_o be_v the_o father_n of_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o in_o he_o and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n and_o we_o by_o he_o but_o if_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v by_o he_o very_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o unto_o the_o galathian_o as_o touch_v the_o time_n of_o infidelity_n it_o be_v write_v 8._o gala._n 4_o 8._o when_o as_o you_o serve_v those_o which_o in_o nature_n be_v no_o god_n etc._n etc._n by_o which_o word_n the_o contrary_a be_v gather_v that_o see_v they_o be_v convert_v unto_o christ_n and_o serve_v he_o they_o serve_v he_o that_o in_o nature_n be_v god_n but_o to_o follow_v the_o sure_a and_o more_o undoubted_a testimony_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n 1._o psal_n 110_o 1._o out_o of_o david_n we_o have_v the_o lord_n say_v unto_o my_o lord_n sit_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n until_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n esaie_n call_v he_o emanuel_n 6._o esaie_n 7_o 14._o esaie_n 9_o 6._o and_o again_o he_o say_v his_o name_n shall_v be_v call_v wonder_v a_o counsellor_n god_n etc._n etc._n jeremie_n in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n say_v 6._o jerem._n 21_o 6._o that_o he_o must_v be_v call_v god_n our_o righteousness_n &_o he_o use_v the_o name_n tetragrammaton_fw-gr the_o very_a which_o thing_n thou_o may_v see_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o same_o prophet_n in_o the_o 31._o chapter_n 23._o jere._n 31_o 23._o wherein_o though_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o city_n i_o mean_v of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o church_n yet_o nevertheless_o all_o that_o do_v appertain_v unto_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o same_o yea_o rather_o by_o he_o be_v such_o a_o name_n attribute_v to_o the_o church_n &_o people_n of_o god_n also_o we_o read_v in_o esaie_n 8._o esaie_n 53_o 8._o who_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o reckon_v his_o generation_n and_o in_o the_o prophet_n micheas_n 2._o miche_n 5_o 2._o and_o thou_o bethleem_n of_o jewrie_n be_v not_o the_o least_o among_o the_o thousand_o of_o juda_n for_o out_o of_o thou_o shall_v come_v forth_o unto_o i_o one_o that_o shall_v rule_v my_o people_n israel_n who_o out-going_a have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o from_o everlasting_a by_o which_o word_n both_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v 10._o esaie_n 11_o 10._o add_v again_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n esaie_n that_o which_o be_v cite_v by_o paul_n in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n 12._o rom._n 15_o 12._o there_o shall_v be_v a_o root_n of_o jesse_n which_o shall_v arise_v to_o rule_v over_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o he_o shall_v the_o gentile_n trust_v and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v accurse_v 3._o look_v in_o rom._n 1_o and_z 4_o &_o 25_o &_o 8_o verse_n 34_o &_o 9_o a_o 5_o &_o 33_o &_o 10_o 17_o &_o 11_o 7_o &_o 27._o 1._o cor._n 11_o verse_n 3._o which_o put_v any_o hope_n in_o a_o creature_n therefore_o see_v we_o must_v put_v our_o trust_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v call_v upon_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o he_o be_v god_n there_o may_v be_v heap_v up_o other_o testimony_n of_o this_o matter_n but_o these_o i_o think_v to_o be_v enough_o and_o enough_o again_o to_o confute_v the_o boldness_n of_o these_o man_n whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n 12._o in_o 1._o cor._n 12._o 6_o now_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v from_o the_o purpose_n to_o confirm_v by_o many_o reason_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n take_v the_o word_n spirit_n diverslie_o take_v this_o word_n spirit_n sometime_o signify_v a_o certain_a motion_n or_o a_o nature_n mooveable_a sometime_o it_o be_v take_v for_o life_n or_o mind_n or_o the_o force_n of_o the_o mind_n whereby_o we_o be_v move_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v also_o transffer_v to_o the_o signify_v of_o thing_n spirit_n why_o our_o soul_n and_o angel_n and_o god_n be_v call_v spirit_n which_o be_v separate_v from_o matter_n as_o be_v the_o angel_n which_o the_o philosopher_n call_v intelligency_n yea_o and_o it_o be_v so_o far_o draw_v as_o it_o represent_v our_o soul_n which_o metaphor_n seem_v to_o have_v respect_n thereunto_o because_o we_o sometime_o signify_v by_o this_o name_n the_o thin_a exhalation_n which_o breath_n either_o from_o the_o earth_n from_o the_o water_n from_o the_o blood_n or_o from_o the_o humour_n of_o live_a creature_n which_o exhalation_n although_o they_o be_v not_o easy_o perceive_v by_o the_o sense_n yet_o be_v they_o effectual_a and_o of_o exceed_a great_a force_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o wind_n earthquake_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v hereby_o that_o the_o name_n of_o these_o most_o subtle_a body_n who_o force_n be_v exceed_a great_a have_v be_v translate_v to_o the_o express_v of_o substance_n without_o body_n wherefore_o it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o word_n general_a word_n spirit_n be_v a_o general_a word_n both_o unto_o god_n unto_o angel_n and_o unto_o our_o soul_n and_o that_o it_o be_v attribute_v unto_o god_n christ_n show_v when_o he_o say_v god_n be_v a_o spirit_n 24._o john_n 4_o 24._o and_o thereupon_o conclude_v that_o he_o must_v be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n when_o it_o be_v so_o take_v this_o name_n comprehend_v under_o it_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o sometime_o it_o be_v take_v particular_o son_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o person_n distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n for_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n which_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o of_o this_o person_n we_o speak_v at_o this_o time_n wherein_o two_o thing_n must_v be_v show_v first_o that_o he_o be_v a_o person_n distinct_a as_o well_o from_o the_o father_n as_o the_o son_n secondlie_o we_o will_v show_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v by_o this_o mean_v describe_v to_o be_v god_n 19_o the_o first_o reason_n matt._n 28_o 19_o 7_o as_o touch_v the_o first_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o shall_v baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o place_n do_v most_o plain_o express_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o three_o person_n and_o do_v signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o name_n power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o in_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n as_o luke_n rehearse_v 21._o the_o second_o reason_n matt._n 3_o 16._o luke_n 3_o 21._o the_o voice_n of_o the_o father_n be_v hear_v which_o say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n further_o the_o holy_a ghost_n appéer_v under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o doove_n here_o as_o thou_o see_v the_o son_n be_v baptize_v the_o father_n speak_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n show_v himself_o in_o form_n of_o a_o doove_n in_o john_n it_o be_v say_v reason_n john_n 14_o 16._o the_o three_o reason_n i_o will_v ask_v my_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n here_o also_o the_o son_n pray_v the_o father_n hear_v and_o the_o comforter_n be_v
bring_v into_o the_o city_n which_o act_n augustine_n do_v maruellouslie_o mislike_v of_o who_o most_o evident_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o counterfeit_v god_n by_o image_n and_o in_o his_o eight_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la 23._o and_o 24._o chapter_n he_o sharp_o reprove_v hermes_n trismegistus_n who_o presume_v to_o say_v that_o man_n do_v well_o in_o make_v of_o image_n that_o even_o as_o god_n make_v heavenly_a god_n so_o he_o give_v power_n unto_o man_n to_o make_v earthly_a god_n 8_o but_o at_o this_o day_n in_o christendom_n there_o be_v such_o kind_n of_o image_n suffer_v whereby_o god_n himself_o may_v be_v represent_v for_o trinity_n a_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n to_o express_v the_o bless_a trinity_n thou_o may_v see_v everywhere_a in_o the_o church_n a_o man_n paint_v with_o three_o head_n in_o a_o other_o place_n they_o put_v a_o tall_a old_a man_n for_o god_n the_o father_n who_o have_v stand_v before_o he_o a_o young_a man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o son_n and_o between_o both_o they_o place_v the_o picture_n of_o a_o doove_n and_o that_o be_v in_o stead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o do_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n take_v away_o these_o thing_n but_o allow_v of_o they_o howbeit_o with_o such_o fond_a argument_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o repeat_v lest_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o dissemble_v any_o thing_n the_o seven_o synod_n which_o be_v hold_v at_o nice_a nice_a the_o 7._o synod_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o reign_n of_o constantinus_n and_o iren_n thus_o conclude_v for_o it_o be_v god_n which_o the_o image_n teach_v but_o itself_o be_v not_o god_n look_v upon_o this_o but_o worship_n with_o thy_o mind_n that_o which_o thou_o behold_v in_o the_o same_o image_n but_o what_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o this_o synod_n we_o shall_v see_v in_o due_a place_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o objection_n of_o the_o adversary_n first_o of_o all_o they_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v give_v occasion_n to_o form_n image_n god_n the_o objection_n of_o they_o which_o will_v have_v image_n of_o god_n for_o see_v they_o have_v attribute_v unto_o god_n the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n namely_o eye_n ear_n head_n nostril_n foot_n etc._n etc._n there_o seem_v no_o cause_n why_o but_o that_o the_o painter_n and_o gravers_n may_v form_v the_o very_a same_o unto_o he_o also_o it_o be_v write_v in_o ose_n 10._o ose_n 12_o 10._o i_o be_o liken_v by_o hand_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o seven_o of_o daniel_n 9_o verse_n 9_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n be_v show_v unto_o the_o prophet_n which_o have_v the_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n white_a like_o wool_n 23._o ezech._n 1_o 26_o esaie_n 6_o 1._o exo._n 24_o 10._o and_o 33_o 23._o also_o there_o be_v show_v unto_o ezechiel_n the_o similitude_n of_o a_o man_n yea_o &_o esaie_n say_v that_o he_o see_v the_o lord_n sit_v upon_o a_o throne_n etc._n etc._n and_o moses_n also_o with_o the_o elder_n see_v god_n sit_v upon_o a_o throne_n &_o upon_o the_o mountain_n he_o behold_v his_o hinder_a part_n like_o unto_o a_o man_n go_v away_o wherefore_o they_o say_v that_o see_v those_o thing_n have_v be_v show_v and_o have_v be_v see_v by_o the_o prophet_n why_o shall_v it_o be_v think_v a_o wicked_a part_n to_o plant_v out_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n in_o colour_n and_o engraving_n objection_n the_o first_o answer_n to_o those_o objection_n of_o some_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o the_o diversity_n of_o member_n which_o be_v attribute_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v show_v by_o a_o certain_a mystery_n that_o the_o divine_a nature_n shall_v in_o time_n to_o come_v take_v upon_o it_o a_o humane_a nature_n but_o i_o let_v pass_v this_o answer_n for_o this_o time_n affirm_v that_o we_o ought_v here_o to_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o do_v so_o humble_a itself_o unto_o our_o infirmity_n that_o see_v we_o can_v not_o understand_v his_o nature_n he_o will_v under_o the_o name_n of_o member_n or_o part_n open_z or_o rather_o shadow_v unto_o we_o certain_a of_o his_o property_n for_o by_o the_o eye_n he_o describe_v his_o providence_n by_o the_o arm_n his_o might_n by_o hand_n his_o workmanship_n by_o nostril_n his_o wrath_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o like_a sort_n where_o it_o be_v afterward_o say_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o to_o use_v the_o same_o lineament_n colour_n and_o engraving_n it_o follow_v not_o for_o there_o be_v no_o law_n give_v unto_o god_n all_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v right_o and_o justly_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o man_n to_o do_v for_o god_n take_v revenge_n of_o his_o enemy_n he_o command_v the_o father_n to_o kill_v his_o son_n and_o will_v the_o hebrews_n to_o take_v away_o the_o good_n of_o the_o egyptian_n the_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v wicked_a for_o man_n either_o to_o do_v or_o command_v 2._o deut._n 32_o 35_o gen_n 22_o 1._o exod._n 11_o 2._o for_o he_o appoint_v law_n for_o man_n and_o not_o for_o himself_o and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o law_n he_o may_v otherwhiles_o except_v some_o thing_n from_o it_o wherefore_o we_o must_v assure_v ourselves_o that_o what_o he_o do_v he_o do_v not_o without_o consideration_n in_o deed_n he_o express_v himself_o some_o time_n by_o certain_a apparition_n but_o in_o they_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o idolatry_n for_o who_o be_v there_o that_o worship_v word_n either_o speak_v or_o write_v else_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o they_o for_o word_n pass_v away_o knowledge_n also_o and_o conceit_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v put_v out_o of_o remembrance_n but_o if_o so_o be_v thing_n themselves_o be_v paint_v or_o engrave_v outward_o man_n will_v ready_o adore_v they_o burn_v incense_n to_o they_o and_o pray_v unto_o they_o further_o let_v we_o consider_v that_o the_o prophet_n which_o have_v such_o kind_n of_o form_n in_o their_o mind_n do_v never_o picture_n they_o nor_o yet_o make_v image_n of_o they_o for_o they_o do_v know_v that_o god_n forbid_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v neither_o do_v they_o dispute_v with_o themselves_o in_o this_o manner_n god_n have_v thus_o declare_v himself_o unto_o we_o therefore_o it_o be_v lawful_a so_o to_o express_v he_o out_o in_o image_n beside_o this_o god_n command_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o propitiatory_a upon_o the_o ark_n 17._o exo._n 25_o 17._o as_o though_o his_o seat_n shall_v be_v there_o but_o the_o same_o be_v a_o empty_a seat_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o image_n of_o god_n therein_o moreover_o the_o scripture_n which_o do_v shadow_n god_n many_o way_n if_o they_o be_v attentivelie_o read_v will_v teach_v we_o that_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o without_o a_o body_n and_o so_o do_v they_o meet_v with_o that_o error_n which_o may_v arise_v in_o our_o mind_n but_o a_o picture_n or_o image_n although_o we_o behold_v the_o same_o a_o thousand_o time_n do_v signify_v none_o other_o thing_n than_o that_o which_o be_v show_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n wherefore_o there_o be_v neither_o way_n the_o like_a reason_n and_o it_o be_v true_o prove_v that_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v express_v by_o image_n but_o they_o make_v their_o moan_n &_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o then_o do_v shall_v not_o god_n be_v some_o manner_n of_o way_n counterfeit_v that_o our_o mind_n thereby_o may_v be_v carry_v or_o lift_v up_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n we_o answer_v that_o of_o his_o image_n there_o be_v enough_o already_o extant_a for_o christ_n be_v the_o livelie_a image_n of_o he_o let_v we_o therefore_o behold_v he_o &_o his_o act_n and_o in_o he_o we_o shall_v know_v god_n abundantlie_o furthermore_o we_o have_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o most_o perfect_o paint_v out_o god_n to_o we_o so_o much_o as_o be_v requisite_a to_o the_o paint_n out_o of_o he_o what_o need_n have_v we_o either_o of_o wood_n brass_n gold_n silver_n or_o other_o sensible_a matter_n again_o if_o it_o delight_v we_o to_o behold_v the_o livelie_a image_n of_o he_o let_v we_o look_v upon_o godly_a man_n which_o now_o be_v and_o sometime_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n for_o they_o undoubted_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n create_v and_o afterward_o be_v restore_v to_o the_o image_n of_o god._n we_o have_v moreover_o as_o it_o be_v above_o declare_v all_o the_o work_n of_o nature_n wherein_o the_o print_a step_n of_o god_n power_n do_v appear_v further_o we_o have_v the_o visible_a sacrament_n wherewith_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v join_v sure_o these_o thing_n may_v suffice_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v enough_o to_o lift_v up_o man_n mind_n to_o the_o behold_v of_o god_n and_o his_o property_n but_o curious_a and_o
the_o husband_n be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o wife_n because_o in_o virtue_n and_o wisdom_n he_o ought_v to_o excel_v she_o and_o although_o this_o do_v not_o always_o come_v to_o pass_v yet_o reason_n will_v that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o shall_v so_o be_v 23._o ephes_n 5_o 23._o but_o paul_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n command_v that_o man_n shall_v love_v their_o wife_n as_o christ_n love_v the_o church_n wife_n man_n must_v love_v their_o wife_n but_o christ_n so_o love_v the_o church_n as_o he_o both_o purge_v it_o and_o make_v it_o safe_a even_o as_o in_o the_o government_n of_o excellent_a man_n they_o which_o bear_v rule_v do_v not_o only_o respect_v their_o own_o profit_n but_o the_o public_a weal_n and_o the_o head_n do_v not_o exercise_v tyranny_n against_o the_o member_n even_o so_o between_o man_n and_o wife_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o need_n of_o violence_n which_o i_o speak_v not_o to_o this_o end_n as_o though_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o reform_v and_o constrain_v their_o wife_n that_o offend_v for_o christ_n do_v sometime_o both_o chasten_v and_o correct_v his_o church_n but_o this_o he_o do_v to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v make_v it_o the_o better_a so_o if_o man_n correct_v &_o chasten_v their_o wife_n at_o any_o time_n correct_v after_o what_o sort_n wife_n must_v be_v correct_v it_o be_v meet_v for_o they_o to_o do_v it_o with_o that_o charity_n wherewith_o christ_n amend_v his_o church_n but_o this_o they_o do_v not_o who_o in_o a_o rage_n and_o only_o to_o satisfy_v their_o own_o desire_n do_v miserable_o handle_v they_o and_o god_n doubtless_o by_o the_o hand_n and_o industry_n of_o man_n because_o of_o their_o estate_n &_o natural_a dignity_n bestow_v many_o thing_n upon_o woman_n but_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o do_v at_o any_o time_n that_o man_n be_v either_o teach_v to_o be_v better_o or_o else_o obtain_v any_o gift_n of_o god_n by_o mean_n of_o woman_n that_o happen_v but_o seldom_o and_o it_o be_v nothing_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o order_n appoint_v by_o god_n 5_o furthermore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n what_o be_v due_a to_o every_o one_o 15_o 1._o kin._n 17_o 15_o unless_o the_o widow_n of_o sarepta_n have_v certeinlie_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o special_a will_n of_o god_n she_o shall_v not_o have_v do_v this_o namely_o to_o defraud_v herself_o and_o her_o son_n to_o the_o intent_n she_o may_v sustain_v a_o man_n be_v a_o stranger_n neither_o ought_v prophet_n or_o man_n of_o god_n by_o the_o accustom_a rule_n of_o piety_n to_o require_v this_o of_o any_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v maintain_v they_o without_o take_v care_n for_o themselves_o and_o their_o child_n for_o even_o the_o apostle_n to_o timothy_n do_v plain_o pronounce_v 8._o 1._o tim._n 5_o 8._o that_o they_o which_o have_v not_o a_o care_n of_o their_o own_o and_o especial_o of_o their_o family_n have_v deny_v the_o faith_n and_o be_v become_v worse_o than_o infidel_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v that_o widow_n shall_v be_v maintain_v by_o they_o of_o their_o own_o kindred_n but_o when_o the_o widow_n be_v now_o certify_v by_o the_o special_a will_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o for_o she_o to_o have_v respect_n what_o be_v command_v by_o the_o law_n in_o general_a neither_o may_v that_o take_v place_n which_o be_v make_v a_o common_a proverb_n charity_n first_o begin_v at_o a_o man_n himself_o howbeit_o one_o we_o must_v have_v respect_n what_o be_v due_a to_o every_o one_o as_o touch_v the_o common_a course_n that_o we_o may_v perfect_o discern_v to_o who_o we_o be_v more_o or_o less_o bind_v and_o not_o to_o be_v deceive_v we_o must_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a kind_n of_o society_n kindred_n and_o fréendship_n one_o be_v spiritual_a a_o other_o be_v bodily_a or_o of_o the_o same_o stock_n a_o other_o be_v civil_a order_n a_o comparison_n must_v be_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o one_o order_n and_o such_o like_a wherefore_o when_o we_o reason_n concern_v love_n and_o do_v good_a towards_o our_o neighbour_n there_o ought_v a_o comparison_n to_o be_v make_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o one_o degree_n which_o be_v not_o make_v a_o error_n will_v soon_o happen_v that_o which_o i_o have_v now_o speak_v i_o will_v declare_v by_o example_n that_o it_o may_v the_o more_o plain_o appear_v if_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v instruct_v by_o a_o godly_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o regeneration_n and_o the_o same_o man_n have_v therewithal_o a_o father_n of_o who_o he_o be_v beget_v or_o have_v child_n and_o the_o question_n be_v ask_v whether_o he_o be_v more_o bind_v to_o his_o pastor_n or_o else_o to_o his_o father_n and_o child_n we_o must_v not_o answer_v absolute_o see_v with_o our_o answer_n the_o matter_n will_v not_o be_v express_v but_o we_o will_v say_v that_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v spiritual_a friendship_n we_o ought_v more_v to_o obey_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n that_o teach_v we_o right_o and_o admonish_v we_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n than_o either_o the_o child_n or_o the_o father_n if_o they_o persuade_v thing_n that_o be_v contrary_a and_o repugnant_a but_o if_o we_o demand_v as_o touch_v thing_n of_o a_o other_o sort_n namely_o of_o food_n and_o of_o maintenance_n there_o be_v more_o due_a unto_o parent_n and_o unto_o child_n than_o be_v unto_o other_o though_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o which_o matter_n the_o scribe_n pharisy_n and_o high_a priest_n offend_v when_o they_o teach_v child_n to_o say_v unto_o their_o parent_n 5_o matth._n 15_o 5_o the_o gift_n which_o i_o offer_v shall_v avail_v thou_o and_o so_o by_o offer_v up_o of_o their_o good_n in_o the_o holy_a ministry_n they_o will_v defraud_v their_o parent_n of_o their_o due_a sustenance_n indeed_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n must_v be_v maintain_v but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o any_o man_n shall_v defraud_v either_o himself_o or_o his_o family_n of_o necessary_a live_n i_o will_v use_v a_o other_o similitude_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n admit_v that_o a_o man_n be_v in_o the_o camp_n where_o just_a war_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n when_o the_o general_a capteine_n charge_v he_o in_o something_o concern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o war_n and_o the_o father_n be_v present_a command_v he_o to_o the_o contrary_a in_o this_o case_n the_o son_n shall_v rather_o offer_v himself_o to_o the_o general_a than_o to_o his_o father_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v determine_v of_o household_n business_n and_o of_o thing_n pertain_v to_o live_v and_o sustenance_n the_o parent_n shall_v be_v hear_v and_o not_o the_o general_a capteine_n héereunto_o respect_v that_o say_n of_o ambrose_n when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o office_n i_o do_v no_o less_o choose_v you_o speak_v unto_o his_o flock_n of_o millen_n who_o i_o have_v regenerate_v by_o the_o gospel_n than_o if_o i_o have_v beget_v you_o in_o wedlock_n true_a in_o deed_n be_v that_o which_o he_o speak_v for_o as_o touch_v the_o imploieng_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o doctrine_n of_o amendment_n and_o of_o sacrament_n he_o be_v no_o less_o debtor_n to_o they_o than_o to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o if_o the_o business_n have_v be_v concern_v the_o food_n and_o maintenance_n of_o body_n although_o he_o may_v not_o forsake_v other_o yet_o he_o shall_v first_o have_v minister_v those_o thing_n to_o his_o own_o moreover_o we_o shall_v call_v a_o other_o matter_n to_o our_o remembrance_n that_o we_o must_v prefer_v the_o commonwealth_n before_o our_o private_a commodity_n and_o this_o perform_v they_o of_o who_o paul_n speak_v in_o the_o 16._o to_o the_o roman_n 4._o verse_n 4._o who_o lay_v down_o their_o neck_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o apostle_n those_o man_n very_o deserve_v well_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v very_o much_o praise_v by_o they_o héereunto_o also_o may_v be_v apply_v that_o which_o paul_n testify_v of_o the_o galathian_o that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a 15._o gal._n 4_o 15._o they_o will_v have_v pluck_v out_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o have_v give_v they_o to_o he_o also_o good_a subject_n if_o their_o good_a magistrate_n happen_v into_o danger_n ought_v not_o to_o spare_v no_o not_o their_o own_o life_n to_o defend_v the_o public_a weal_n and_o safety_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n both_o sort_n of_o man_n i_o mean_v magistrate_n &_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v maintain_v by_o the_o substance_n of_o private_a person_n but_o not_o so_o as_o either_o parent_n or_o child_n shall_v be_v forsake_v for_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n above_o all_o thing_n must_v stand_v in_o force_n
act_n for_o a_o young_a man_n to_o commit_v fornication_n and_o there_o want_v not_o some_o in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n which_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n so_o as_o by_o these_o reason_n the_o filthiness_n of_o whoredom_n be_v so_o extenuate_v that_o either_o it_o be_v not_o count_v for_o sin_n or_o else_o think_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v reckon_v among_o the_o least_o sin_n 2_o we_o must_v not_o have_v a_o respect_n unto_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n but_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o what_o man_n think_v or_o judge_v but_o what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o solomon_n there_o be_v detest_a of_o fornication_n in_o every_o place_n law_n fornication_n be_v forbid_v by_o testimony_n of_o the_o law_n but_o in_o the_o law_n they_o say_v there_o be_v nothing_o decree_v against_o it_o see_v they_o will_v reason_v by_o the_o law_n i_o also_o will_v bring_v testimony_n out_o of_o it_o whereby_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v understand_v that_o fornication_n be_v forbid_v in_o leviticus_fw-la in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n and_o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o jew_n be_v forbid_v to_o link_v themselves_o unto_o strange_a woman_n again_o 17._o verse_n 17._o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o 25._o chapter_n it_o be_v command_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o harlot_n nor_o common_a woman_n in_o israel_n let_v these_o place_n be_v compare_v together_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o have_v any_o harlot_n neither_o strange_a woman_n nor_o yet_o woman_n of_o israel_n therefore_o they_o be_v all_o forbid_a but_o some_o will_v say_v how_o then_o have_v samson_n fellowship_n with_o a_o harlot_n some_o of_o the_o hebrews_n answer_n 1._o jud._n 16_o 1._o that_o she_o be_v not_o a_o harlot_n with_o who_o samson_n have_v fellowship_n but_o one_o that_o keep_v a_o vitling_n house_n but_o forsomuch_o as_o that_o be_v but_o a_o weak_a answer_n i_o think_v that_o a_o other_o answer_n must_v be_v make_v the_o public_a weal_n of_o the_o hebrews_n be_v at_o that_o time_n corrupt_v for_o they_o live_v then_o under_o the_o philistine_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n if_o they_o have_v then_o receive_v some_o of_o their_o vice_n and_o corrupt_a manner_n wherefore_o some_o harlot_n they_o have_v howbeit_o not_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o own_o law_n but_o through_o the_o use_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o philistine_n 3_o but_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 14_o it_o be_v forbid_v by_o testimony_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n heb._n 13_o 14_o whoredom_n be_v open_o and_o manifest_o forbid_v to_o the_o hebrews_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v adulterer_n and_o fornicator_n the_o lord_n will_v judge_v the_o lord_n be_v not_o say_v to_o judge_v and_o to_o avenge_v except_o it_o be_v for_o gréevous_a sin_n and_o to_o the_o ephesian_n not_o only_o covetous_a man_n and_o idolater_n 5._o ephesi_n 5_o 5._o but_o also_o fornicator_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o the_o corinthian_n also_o where_o paul_n write_v of_o excommunication_n i_o speak_v not_o say_v he_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o fornicator_n 11._o 1._o cor._n 5_o 11._o but_o if_o any_o brother_n be_v name_v a_o fornicator_n with_o such_o you_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o eat_v but_o he_o treat_v much_o more_o manifest_o of_o all_o this_o matter_n in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n and_o that_o of_o very_a purpose_n for_o many_o as_o it_o be_v say_v be_v of_o a_o evil_a opinion_n as_o touch_v this_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n first_o he_o say_v meat_n be_v ordain_v for_o the_o belly_n &c_n 1._o cor._n 6_o verse_n 13_o &c_n &c_n and_o the_o belly_n for_o meat_n but_o god_n shall_v destroy_v both_o this_o and_o that_o now_o the_o body_n be_v not_o for_o fornication_n but_o for_o the_o lord_n moreover_o all_o meat_n of_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v pure_a but_o for_o the_o offence_n of_o our_o neighbour_n we_o ought_v sometime_o to_o abstain_v howbeit_o some_o man_n may_v say_v meat_n be_v necessary_a to_o live_v by_o it_o be_v say_v paul_n in_o this_o life_n but_o in_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n god_n shall_v destroy_v both_o the_o meat_n and_o the_o belly_n wherefore_o thou_o must_v not_o so_o much_o esteem_v it_o that_o for_o such_o a_o cause_n thou_o shall_v offend_v thy_o brother_n it_o be_v not_o command_v that_o thou_o shall_v abstain_v from_o all_o meat_n general_o but_o from_o that_o only_a whereby_o thy_o weak_a brother_n be_v offend_v but_o as_o touch_v fornication_n say_v he_o of_o which_o you_o make_v small_a account_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la there_o be_v a_o far_a other_o respect_n your_o body_n be_v not_o appoint_v for_o fornication_n but_o for_o the_o lord_n and_o this_o must_v not_o be_v pass_v over_o that_o paul_n with_o great_a wisdom_n say_v not_o that_o the_o body_n be_v not_o give_v for_o procreation_n but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o give_v for_o fornication_n since_o the_o body_n be_v also_o give_v for_o procreation_n sake_n oftentimes_o man_n be_v wont_v to_o excuse_v their_o fault_n and_o to_o impute_v they_o unto_o nature_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o body_n say_v he_o be_v that_o it_o may_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o lord_n so_o than_o the_o rule_n of_o life_n must_v be_v take_v thereby_o and_o not_o by_o evil_a example_n relative_n the_o nature_n of_o relative_n this_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o relative_n not_o only_o of_o those_o relative_n which_o in_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n that_o they_o be_v belong_v to_o other_o but_o also_o of_o those_o which_o by_o any_o mean_n be_v refer_v to_o another_o thing_n as_o the_o head_n unto_o the_o body_n and_o likewise_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o head_n for_o when_o we_o see_v the_o head_n we_o straitwaie_o require_v the_o body_n and_o again_o when_o we_o see_v the_o body_n we_o require_v the_o head_n such_o relative_n as_o the_o logician_n say_v be_v call_v secundum_fw-la dici_fw-la the_o lord_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o his_o head_n wherefore_o paul_n both_o wise_o and_o pithy_o dispute_v when_o he_o say_v the_o body_n be_v not_o make_v to_o this_o end_n that_o it_o shall_v pollute_v itself_o with_o lust_n but_o to_o be_v correspondent_a unto_o the_o head_n and_o to_o be_v conformable_a unto_o it_o and_o he_o add_v 14._o verse_n 14._o god_n which_o have_v raise_v up_o christ_n shall_v raise_v we_o up_o also_o by_o his_o power_n the_o first_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o relative_n the_o second_o from_o god_n himself_o for_o if_o he_o shall_v raise_v up_o our_o body_n as_o he_o have_v raise_v up_o christ_n why_o then_o do_v we_o shameful_o use_v they_o he_o proceed_v further_a 15._o verse_n 15._o and_o say_v but_o do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n shall_v i_o then_o take_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n &_o make_v it_o the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n undoubted_o a_o weighty_a argument_n which_o he_o conclude_v shall_v i_o take_v say_v he_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v no_o without_o doubt_n for_o this_o be_v to_o rend_v in_o piece_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v a_o most_o cruel_a thing_n to_o pluck_v away_o the_o member_n from_o a_o livelie_a body_n and_o to_o join_v they_o to_o a_o rot_a or_o dead_a body_n but_o herein_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o reason_n do_v consist_v christ_n can_v commit_v fornication_n wherefore_o if_o thou_o will_v commit_v fornication_n thou_o must_v be_v first_o pluck_v from_o christ_n here_o be_v show_v that_o fornication_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sin_n but_o also_o a_o deadly_a and_o most_o gréevous_a sin_n because_o it_o pluck_v we_o away_o from_o christ_n 4_o afterward_o he_o add_v 16._o verse_n 16._o he_o which_o couple_v himself_o unto_o a_o harlot_n be_v become_v one_o body_n with_o her_o for_o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n and_o he_o which_o be_v join_v with_o god_n be_v one_o spirit_n this_o place_n be_v very_o full_a of_o consolation_n 6._o before_o in_o the_o ten_o plac_n art_n 6._o forsomuch_o as_o it_o declare_v that_o we_o be_v join_v most_o nigh_o unto_o christ_n from_o who_o we_o must_v needs_o be_v pluck_v away_o before_o we_o be_v make_v the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n he_o which_o cleave_v unto_o a_o harlot_n be_v become_v one_o body_n with_o she_o for_o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n the_o apostle_n seem_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n to_o abuse_v the_o word_n of_o genesis_n in_o transfer_v they_o to_o whoredom_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o matrimony_n for_o these_o word_n be_v first_o speak_v of_o adam_n and_o eve_n because_o the_o flesh_n of_o eve_n be_v before_o in_o the_o flesh_n of_o adam_n from_o who_o god_n take_v a_o
sundry_a abuse_n the_o sacrament_n ordain_v of_o god_n and_o especial_o the_o holy_a supper_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o they_o have_v turn_v into_o filthy_a and_o shameful_a idolatry_n and_o of_o the_o sign_n or_o seal_n thereof_o they_o admit_v the_o simple_a flock_n to_o the_o participation_n of_o one_o only_a as_o though_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o invert_v the_o order_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v they_o not_o content_v i_o say_v to_o defraud_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n of_o that_o principal_a food_n of_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v also_o cut_v away_o half_a the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o visible_a word_n and_o the_o evident_a testimony_n of_o the_o goodness_n charity_n and_o ardent_a affection_n of_o christ_n towards_o we_o a_o memorial_n of_o his_o death_n the_o most_o effectual_a mark_n of_o that_o union_n whereby_o they_o grow_v up_o together_o under_o christ_n himself_o be_v head_n unto_o a_o holy_a body_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o will_v i_o here_o add_v that_o this_o one_o thing_n they_o work_v by_o their_o tradition_n namely_o they_o establish_v that_o tyranny_n of_o they_o and_o make_v it_o to_o extend_v further_o abroad_o howbeit_o the_o hope_n be_v that_o christ_n will_v at_o length_n take_v pity_n of_o so_o noble_a a_o body_n of_o he_o and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v a_o mortal_a man_n any_o long_o to_o vaunt_v himself_o so_o proud_o against_o his_o head_n this_o christ_n only_o christ_n i_o say_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n church_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 40_o but_o they_o which_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o will_v common_o be_v account_v which_o also_o his_o shameless_a flatterer_n fear_v not_o to_o publish_v open_o both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n seem_v in_o my_o judgement_n to_o be_v like_a unto_o those_o wicked_a jew_n which_o all_o with_o one_o voice_n deny_v christ_n to_o be_v their_o king_n and_o profess_a caesar_n to_o be_v their_o prince_n even_o as_o in_o a_o body_n well_o frame_v there_o be_v one_o head_n so_o must_v the_o church_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n unless_o it_o be_v transform_v into_o some_o kind_n of_o monster_n be_v endue_v with_o one_o head_n only_o the_o which_o head_n be_v christ_n neither_o stand_v it_o with_o any_o reason_n that_o they_o say_v they_o have_v the_o roman_a bishop_n to_o be_v appoint_v another_o head_n as_o it_o be_v under_o the_o chief_a head_n christ_n who_o bishop_n to_o wit_n that_o other_o head_n they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v a_o necessary_a instrument_n for_o there_o be_v never_o see_v in_o a_o well_o shape_a body_n such_o a_o disorder_n as_o thereunto_o shall_v be_v join_v two_o head_n wherewith_o one_o shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o another_o see_v the_o very_a name_n of_o head_n signify_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o body_n but_o christ_n alone_o show_v himself_o above_o the_o church_n &_o he_o altogether_o by_o marvelous_a and_o unspeakable_a mean_n join_v the_o humane_a nature_n unto_o the_o divine_a nature_n behold_v the_o head_n which_o god_n appoint_v to_o that_o belove_a body_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 21._o epes_n 1_o 21._o we_o confess_v in_o deed_n that_o the_o member_n in_o that_o body_n be_v diverse_a whereof_o one_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o another_o but_o in_o this_o point_n they_o conspire_v all_o in_o one_o that_o they_o be_v subject_a unto_o that_o head_n and_o be_v to_o serve_v faithful_o under_o it_o wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o devise_v more_o head_n than_o one_o and_o undoubted_o it_o be_v very_o intolerable_a pride_n for_o one_o to_o arrogate_v unto_o himself_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n but_o i_o beseech_v you_o let_v it_o be_v as_o these_o man_n will_v that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v count_v another_o head_n under_o christ_n the_o principal_a head_n yet_o with_o what_o faith_n he_o be_v under_o christ_n as_o a_o fit_a instrument_n experience_n itself_o speak_v which_o bear_v record_n that_o he_o not_o only_o do_v not_o cleave_v unto_o christ_n but_o that_o he_o be_v plain_o against_o he_o both_o in_o work_n deed_n and_o counsel_n neither_o be_v it_o my_o purpose_n to_o set_v forth_o at_o large_a the_o proof_n of_o this_o matter_n barnard_n barnard_n see_v barnard_n have_v declare_v the_o same_o indeed_o not_o full_o but_o yet_o so_o as_o their_o crafty_a and_o subtle_a exception_n may_v be_v discover_v wherefore_o be_v content_a with_o this_o profitable_a declaration_n i_o will_v not_o here_o at_o this_o time_n add_v any_o more_o but_o that_o i_o conclude_v again_o church_n christ_n only_o be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o church_n that_o that_o body_n have_v only_a christ_n to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o not_o any_o silly_a man_n which_o with_o his_o authority_n alone_o may_v wrest_v corrupt_v pervert_v and_o rend_v in_o sunder_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereof_o he_o boast_v among_o his_o sort_n that_o he_o within_o the_o closet_n of_o his_o breast_n have_v the_o full_a knowledge_n and_o perfect_a interpretation_n not_o a_o silly_a man_n which_o according_a to_o the_o naked_a judgement_n of_o his_o own_o will_n may_v expulse_v out_o of_o the_o church_n who_o he_o please_v and_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v they_o not_o a_o silly_a man_n that_o at_o his_o own_o only_a beck_n may_v appoint_v pastor_n rector_n and_o bishop_n unto_o church_n to_o who_o he_o will_v not_o commit_v the_o custody_n no_o not_o of_o their_o own_o good_n because_o he_o mistrust_v their_o wit_n and_o industry_n whereof_o he_o have_v not_o have_v any_o one_o jot_n of_o trial_n now_o than_o we_o be_v content_a with_o one_o head_n namely_o christ_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o guide_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v as_o a_o outward_a testimony_n of_o his_o will_n the_o certain_a persuasion_n whereof_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v inwardlie_o seal_v in_o our_o mind_n edify_v by_o what_o mean_v the_o church_n be_v edify_v 41_o but_o let_v we_o weigh_v i_o beseech_v you_o by_o what_o mean_v that_o most_o holy_a body_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v establish_v edify_v and_o also_o increase_v and_o here_o i_o affirm_v that_o beside_o the_o inward_a grace_n faith_n and_o outward_a scripture_n we_o have_v also_o need_v of_o admonition_n and_o godly_a sermon_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o which_o be_v miserable_o intermit_v at_o this_o day_n by_o they_o which_o will_v be_v call_v christian_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a work_n of_o the_o apostolical_a office_n the_o which_o as_o though_o it_o be_v unworthy_a for_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o bishop_n forsooth_o these_o new_a head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v commit_v it_o unto_o certain_a hungry_a monk_n monk_n preach_v commit_v to_o certain_a hungry_a monk_n who_o nevertheless_o be_v threaten_v unto_o galley_n unto_o perpetual_a prison_n and_o to_o be_v put_v to_o every_o most_o cruel_a death_n if_o they_o pass_v the_o bound_n prescribe_v by_o they_o indeed_o they_o know_v very_o handsome_o how_o to_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o own_o office_n charge_n and_o labour_n but_o so_o as_o they_o will_v never_o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n concern_v holy_a thing_n preach_n the_o manner_n of_o papistical_a preach_n yet_o nevertheless_o whosoever_o do_v take_v that_o charge_n in_o hand_n they_o will_v have_v they_o to_o preach_v after_o the_o rule_v prescribe_v by_o they_o whereof_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o poor_a small_a flock_n of_o christ_n either_o perish_v with_o hunger_n or_o else_o be_v scantlie_o and_o slenderlie_o feed_v and_o common_o the_o sermon_n touch_v holy_a thing_n be_v only_o make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o lent_n and_o a_o very_a few_o day_n beside_o and_o that_o either_o by_o a_o sort_n of_o unlearned_a and_o undiscréet_v man_n which_o know_v not_o sufficient_o those_o thing_n that_o they_o speak_v or_o else_o by_o they_o which_o stand_v more_o afraid_a of_o some_o than_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v or_o else_o by_o such_o as_o hunt_v after_o honour_n riches_n or_o favour_n which_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o their_o vocation_n wherefore_o at_o that_o time_n they_o have_v sermon_n but_o yet_o such_o as_o in_o they_o they_o utter_v mere_a trifle_n and_o bewray_v the_o gross_a darkness_n of_o ignorance_n but_o if_o otherwhile_o they_o show_v something_o of_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v do_v with_o such_o cloak_v speech_n with_o such_o intricate_a minse_v and_o nice_a term_n as_o they_o rather_o destroy_v than_o edify_v or_o else_o they_o preach_v flattery_n the_o which_o undoubted_o unto_o all_o godly_a man_n be_v mere_a intolerable_a and_o such_o be_v they_o that_o preach_v for_o the_o desire_n they_o have_v either_o of_o
honour_n or_o of_o private_a commodity_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o year_n be_v spend_v in_o walk_v up_o and_o down_o the_o church_n in_o chant_v sing_a and_o sound_v of_o instument_n in_o all_o which_o thing_n not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o word_n be_v understand_v that_o may_v serve_v for_o edifieng_v of_o the_o people_n at_o which_o time_n those_o chief_a priest_n bishop_n and_o other_o prelate_n be_v occupy_v as_o they_o say_v in_o great_a affair_n as_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n to_o examine_v account_n to_o search_v out_o the_o yéerelie_o revenue_n of_o land_n and_o many_o time_n to_o find_v out_o new_a way_n of_o government_n i_o pass_v over_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v more_o outrageous_a not_o because_o it_o gréeve_v they_o to_o hear_v such_o thing_n but_o partly_o for_o that_o i_o be_o ashamed_a of_o they_o and_o partly_o because_o those_o thing_n be_v sufficient_o know_v and_o manifest_a to_o every_o one_o if_o they_o be_v apostle_n it_o pertain_v unto_o their_o office_n to_o preach_v if_o they_o be_v pastor_n to_o feed_v if_o they_o be_v schoolmaster_n of_o the_o church_n to_o teach_v if_o they_o be_v dispensor_n of_o the_o treasure_n of_o christ_n they_o ought_v to_o enrich_v their_o sheep_n therewith_o i_o mean_v not_o with_o their_o pardon_n bull_n and_o blessing_n but_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o continual_a admonition_n and_o correction_n by_o which_o mean_v the_o infidel_n be_v convert_v unto_o god_n the_o faithful_a be_v stir_v up_o from_o their_o sloth_n and_o idleness_n and_o receive_v comfort_n in_o the_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n 42_o these_o be_v those_o exquisite_a art_n whereby_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v preserve_v unto_o the_o which_o must_v be_v add_v the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o yet_o whole_a and_o through_o cleanse_v from_o the_o devise_n of_o man_n oh_o thou_o that_o holy_a supper_n of_o the_o lord_n how_o many_o way_n be_v thou_o here_o miserable_o dishonour_v and_o pollute_a oh_o mass_n mass_n mass_n what_o remain_v sound_a in_o thou_o but_o here_o will_v i_o forbear_v my_o stile_n see_v i_o write_v a_o catechism_n and_o not_o a_o full_a treatise_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o nevertheless_o i_o hope_v short_o if_o the_o lord_n lend_v i_o life_n to_o bring_v to_o pass_v these_o few_o thing_n i_o have_v write_v only_o to_o this_o end_n that_o i_o may_v show_v how_o ill_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v handle_v which_o do_v make_v for_o the_o increase_n and_o profit_n of_o the_o church_n i_o will_v speak_v nothing_o of_o baptism_n see_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n the_o same_o have_v be_v somewhat_o less_o pollute_v with_o foul_a abuse_n and_o although_o it_o be_v not_o pure_o and_o sound_o use_v yet_o there_o be_v less_o cause_n for_o thou_o to_o compla●ne_v herein_o sacrament_n the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n wherefore_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v most_o profitable_a unto_o the_o church_n see_v they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v visible_a word_n the_o which_o consist_v in_o those_o evident_a sign_n of_o water_n bread_n and_o wine_n by_o which_o sign_n as_o it_o be_v by_o word_n all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n mercy_n be_v effectual_o represent_v unto_o us._n and_o here_o not_o only_o the_o promise_n be_v give_v we_o but_o we_o be_v assure_o partaker_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o therefore_o those_o sacrament_n be_v very_o necessary_a unto_o we_o and_o further_o we_o not_o a_o little_a unto_o salvation_n correction_n brotherlie_a correction_n unto_o which_o sacrament_n must_v be_v join_v brotherlie_a correction_n which_o in_o these_o day_n be_v so_o neglect_v as_o no_o man_n will_v apply_v it_o either_o to_o another_o man_n use_n or_o will_v submit_v himself_o thereunto_o such_o profit_n have_v we_o take_v in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n yea_o which_o be_v more_o those_o which_o be_v careful_a but_o of_o their_o own_o matter_n be_v count_v godly_a yea_o and_o in_o a_o manner_n holy_a which_o nevertheless_o be_v so_o undecent_a and_o dishonest_a as_o it_o be_v not_o allow_v no_o not_o of_o the_o heathen_a philosopher_n see_v they_o free_o confess_v that_o man_n be_v not_o bear_v only_o to_o himself_o yea_o and_o very_a ox_n or_o sheep_n or_o ass_n if_o they_o be_v fall_v down_o by_o the_o way_n will_v help_v one_o another_o and_o shall_v not_o we_o have_v a_o care_n of_o our_o brethren_n that_o when_o they_o faint_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o sin_n to_o reléeve_v they_o with_o the_o help_n of_o holy_a correction_n but_o if_o that_o do_v not_o prevail_v it_o behove_v that_o excommunication_n follow_v which_o god_n have_v leave_v we_o as_o the_o last_o remedy_n against_o obstinate_a person_n law_n ecclesiastical_a law_n 43_o to_o conclude_v that_o holy_a body_n be_v preserve_v by_o equal_a and_o just_a law_n by_o the_o which_o it_o must_v be_v rule_v and_o govern_v so_o far_o as_o concern_v those_o outward_a exercise_n of_o which_o sort_n be_v the_o come_n together_o unto_o public_a prayer_n at_o place_n and_o time_n convenient_a to_o sing_v praise_n unto_o god_n to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o christ_n and_o to_o come_v unto_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n all_o which_o thing_n must_v be_v do_v in_o order_n decentlie_o and_o honest_o even_o as_o paul_n teach_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 14_o 1._o cor._n 14_o 14_o these_o law_n must_v not_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o will_n and_o discretion_n of_o one_o man_n neither_o yet_o must_v they_o be_v account_v of_o so_o great_a authority_n as_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v reveal_v to_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o they_o must_v be_v so_o ordain_v as_o they_o can_v be_v repeal_v and_o change_v by_o one_o man_n consent_n but_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o any_o detriment_n come_v to_o the_o church_n by_o they_o moreover_o let_v no_o man_n settle_v his_o hope_n upon_o those_o thing_n as_o though_o they_o can_v bring_v righteousness_n or_o salvation_n but_o let_v he_o remember_v that_o they_o be_v ordinance_n of_o man_n further_o that_o they_o have_v not_o to_o do_v with_o yéerelie_o rent_n with_o gain_n or_o with_o the_o private_a commodity_n of_o any_o man_n but_o that_o they_o must_v whole_o have_v a_o respect_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o profit_n of_o our_o neighbour_n let_v not_o their_o number_n be_v so_o augment_v as_o either_o they_o may_v be_v naughtilie_o comprise_v or_o else_o that_o they_o shall_v oppress_v the_o people_n with_o a_o more_o gréevous_a burden_n let_v they_o not_o despoil_v the_o people_n of_o that_o liberty_n which_o be_v give_v in_o christ_n let_v they_o not_o bound_v man_n conscience_n with_o the_o terror_n of_o eternal_a death_n with_o these_o condition_n i_o say_v if_o law_n be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n let_v christian_n embrace_v they_o let_v they_o obey_v &_o reverentlie_o submit_v themselves_o to_o they_o where_o the_o matter_n so_o stand_v that_o law_n be_v after_o this_o order_n appoint_v they_o can_v be_v contemn_v or_o little_o set_v by_o without_o gréevous_a offence_n hitherto_o we_o have_v large_o enough_o dispute_v what_o that_o holy_a body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v how_o it_o may_v be_v join_v together_o in_o one_o what_o head_n it_o have_v by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v nourish_v augment_v &_o preserve_v and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o i_o have_v be_v induce_v to_o stand_v long_o upon_o this_o matter_n than_o my_o manner_n be_v to_o do_v it_o must_v altogether_o be_v impute_v not_o to_o any_o superfivitie_n of_o speech_n but_o unto_o the_o nature_n and_o state_n of_o the_o cause_n which_o abound_v with_o such_o plenty_n &_o store_n of_o matter_n as_o i_o have_v rather_o touch_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o thing_n than_o sufficient_o express_v it_o according_a to_o the_o worthiness_n thereof_o but_o that_o which_o may_v be_v want_v at_o this_o time_n we_o will_v prosecute_v more_o large_o in_o another_o place_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n 44_o unto_o the_o former_a article_n of_o the_o conjunction_n and_o union_n of_o the_o faithful_a into_o one_o body_n of_o the_o church_n now_o be_v apt_o add_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o where_o else_o to_o be_v hope_v for_o but_o in_o the_o church_n church_n the_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v only_o incident_a to_o the_o church_n for_o although_o the_o same_o be_v grant_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o only_a liberality_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n yet_o can_v we_o not_o obtain_v the_o same_o but_o only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n whosoever_o therefore_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o this_o fellowship_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v partaker_n thereof_o see_v it_o be_v only_o grant_v unto_o they_o which_o
force_n as_o contrition_n and_o repentance_n be_v defer_v touch_v the_o sin_n commit_v and_o when_o repentance_n be_v perform_v then_o also_o let_v a_o end_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o excommunication_n be_v appoint_v for_o which_o cause_n christ_n be_v demand_v of_o peter_n how_o oftentimes_o a_o man_n shall_v forgive_v they_o that_o offend_v 21._o ibid._n 21._o whether_o seven_o time_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v much_o answer_v even_o so_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v return_v again_o to_o better_a life_n for_o that_o be_v awoint_v when_o he_o say_v seventie_o time_n seven_o wherefore_o they_o which_o by_o repentance_n return_v to_o the_o church_n must_v evermore_o be_v admit_v and_o lest_o peradventure_o so_o often_o separation_n and_o receive_v reiterated_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n against_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v of_o small_a importance_n and_o repute_v for_o sport_n and_o mockery_n as_o a_o thing_n proceed_v from_o the_o will_n of_o man_n he_o add_v that_o he_o give_v they_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n church_n the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o power_n that_o whatsoever_o she_o shall_v bind_v or_o loose_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v establish_v in_o heaven_n and_o this_o do_v the_o church_n understand_v in_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n write_v it_o by_o this_o article_n therefore_o we_o believe_v that_o such_o divine_a authority_n be_v commit_v unto_o the_o church_n that_o it_o may_v absolve_v and_o set_v at_o liberty_n the_o person_n excommunicate_a which_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o sin_n commit_v and_o may_v reconcile_v they_o to_o herself_o whereby_o they_o may_v be_v restore_v unto_o that_o place_n of_o a_o heal_v body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n which_o absolution_n be_v perform_v with_o public_a vow_n and_o prayer_n in_o the_o church_n no_o doubt_n but_o the_o church_n forgive_v they_o their_o sin_n commit_v wherefore_o after_o the_o grant_n of_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o key_n 20._o matt._n 18_o 19_o and_o 20._o christ_n not_o in_o vain_a add_v whatsoever_o you_o ask_v in_o my_o name_n it_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o and_o wheresoever_o two_o or_o three_o shall_v be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n i_o be_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o whereby_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o church_n be_v never_o present_a either_o to_o excommunicate_v or_o to_o reconcile_v they_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v but_o that_o christ_n himself_o also_o be_v present_a 8_o 2._o cor._n 2_o 7_o 8_o wherefore_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o second_o epistle_n write_v to_o the_o church_n that_o forgive_a the_o fault_n of_o that_o sinner_n of_o who_o he_o have_v make_v mention_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n they_o shall_v confirm_v charity_n towards_o he_o in_o renew_v with_o he_o their_o old_a friendship_n behold_v how_o we_o contemn_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o will_n and_o authority_n of_o one_o we_o confess_v this_o power_n therefore_o to_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n among_o the_o godly_a but_o even_o as_o the_o multitude_n of_o beléever_n gather_v together_o in_o christ_n have_v only_o the_o right_n of_o excommunication_n so_o have_v they_o also_o of_o reconcile_a and_o admit_v and_o that_o which_o be_v so_o perform_v by_o they_o we_o believe_v also_o to_o be_v do_v and_o confirm_v in_o heaven_n howbeit_o note_n that_o in_o this_o three_o mean_n be_v contain_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o public_a sin_n only_o and_o as_o concern_v the_o two_o former_a mean_n the_o church_n have_v belong_v unto_o it_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o all_o sin_n in_o general_n here_o only_o that_o absolution_n take_v place_n which_o appertain_v to_o public_a crime_n the_o which_o through_o evil_a example_n have_v offend_v and_o do_v harm_n unto_o they_o to_o who_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o have_v come_v wherefore_o with_o all_o the_o hart_n and_o voice_n let_v we_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n who_o have_v grant_v unto_o we_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v lay_v up_o great_a for_o we_o in_o heaven_n as_o afterward_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n ¶_o look_v more_o hereof_o in_o the_o three_o part_n 47_o how_o these_o article_n shall_v be_v knit_v together_o life_n after_o remission_n of_o sin_n follow_v life_n by_o a_o more_o fit_a method_n i_o can_v perceive_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v know_v have_v be_v the_o only_a and_o whole_a cause_n of_o man_n death_n and_o that_o we_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n through_o christ_n it_o be_v show_v a_o little_a before_o now_o then_o remain_v this_o one_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o by_o he_o we_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o death_n and_o release_v from_o the_o tyranny_n thereof_o so_o soon_o as_o ever_o we_o have_v access_n unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n since_o then_o shall_v perish_v in_o it_o the_o continual_a jurisdiction_n which_o it_o obtain_v against_o us._n for_o see_v the_o natural_a power_n hereof_o be_v such_o as_o what_o it_o have_v once_o season_v upon_o it_o firm_o hold_v therefore_o the_o philosopher_n write_v that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v grant_v that_o from_o such_o a_o privation_n man_n can_v return_v to_o their_o ancient_a habit_n in_o which_o matter_n certeinlie_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v if_o thou_o shall_v but_o consider_v the_o power_n of_o nature_n but_o we_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o faith_n do_v so_o taste_v of_o death_n as_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o end_n and_o limit_v appoint_v to_o the_o work_n thereof_o we_o be_v confirm_v through_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n himself_o 39_o john_n 6_o 39_o who_o in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n say_v that_o he_o will_v loose_v none_o of_o they_o which_o his_o father_n have_v give_v he_o but_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o at_o the_o latter_a day_n but_o if_o so_o be_v thou_o object_n that_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o not_o only_o they_o that_o be_v godly_a but_o also_o the_o unbeléever_n and_o shall_v therefore_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n as_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n profit_v any_o thing_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o confidence_n in_o christ_n shall_v nothing_o at_o all_o profit_n unto_o the_o mere_a and_o absolute_a resurrection_n see_v that_o degree_n both_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v obtain_v but_o the_o resurrection_n unto_o felicity_n unto_o life_n eternal_a and_o unto_o heavenly_a blessedness_n be_v only_o grant_v un-them_a which_o by_o faith_n be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n howbeit_o i_o think_v not_o meet_v to_o pass_v over_o this_o to_o wit_n that_o whereas_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rise_v again_o they_o obtain_v not_o that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o by_o christ_n for_o see_v we_o confess_v that_o by_o the_o death_n of_o that_o one_o first_o man_n we_o be_v all_o make_v subject_a unto_o death_n it_o be_v reason_n also_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o how_o many_o soever_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o this_o second_o life_n shall_v also_o obtain_v the_o same_o by_o that_o one_o man_n christ_n who_o first_o be_v raise_v up_o wherefore_o the_o wicked_a whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o shall_v feel_v in_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o which_o these_o shall_v obtain_v to_o their_o great_a harm_n just_a man_n shall_v receive_v to_o their_o great_a benefit_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o say_v as_o by_o one_o man_n come_v death_n 21._o 1._o co._n 15_o 21._o so_o by_o one_o man_n come_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o as_o by_o adam_n all_o man_n die_v so_o by_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o order_n the_o first_o fruit_n be_v christ_n than_o they_o which_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o last_o and_o most_o unhappy_a state_n shall_v they_o be_v which_o be_v stranger_n from_o christ_n and_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o difference_n in_o the_o state_n &_o condition_n so_o shall_v there_o be_v also_o in_o the_o place_n for_o the_o saint_n then_o raise_v up_o 17._o 1._o thes_n 4_o 16_o and_o 17._o shall_v together_o with_o the_o godly_a which_o then_o perhaps_o shall_v remain_v alive_a be_v catch_v up_o to_o meet_v with_o that_o high_a king_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o air_n who_o undoubted_o as_o we_o have_v already_o confess_v shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a as_o we_o have_v expresselie_o show_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n wherefore_o christ_n will_v show_v forth_o his_o power_n general_o towards_o all_o as_o well_o good_a as_o bad_a not_o only_o in_o the_o judgement_n itself_o but_o in_o the_o resurrection_n also_o he_o therefore_o be_v the_o first_o that_o have_v
and_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v christ_n answer_v touch_v the_o pharisy_n which_o be_v offend_v at_o his_o doctrine_n let_v they_o alone_o 14._o mat._n 15_o 14._o they_o be_v blind_a leader_n of_o the_o blind_a and_o he_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o offence_n which_o they_o take_v but_o the_o mean_a action_n must_v be_v understand_v either_o according_a to_o the_o do_v or_o else_o according_a to_o the_o sense_n doctrine_n and_o knowledge_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o they_o charity_n in_o the_o do_n of_o me●_n action_n we_o must_v follow_v the_o rule_n of_o charity_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o do_n of_o they_o we_o must_v use_v the_o rule_n of_o charity_n lest_o we_o attempt_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v offend_v our_o weak_a brother_n of_o which_o thing_n the_o apostle_n have_v write_v at_o large_a to_o the_o roman_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o sense_n and_o doctrine_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o evermore_o to_o profess_v and_o judge_v 4._o rom._n 1_o 4._o that_o these_o indifferent_a thing_n through_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n be_v free_a unto_o we_o and_o that_o we_o abstain_v from_o they_o in_o no_o other_o respect_n but_o for_o their_o sake_n that_o be_v weak_a which_o thing_n we_o see_v right_a well_o that_o christ_n do_v 27._o the_o example_n of_o christ_n matt._n 7_o 27._o when_o he_o pay_v the_o tribute_n money_n for_o he_o be_v king_n and_o god_n even_o the_o true_a messiah_n so_o as_o in_o very_a right_n he_o be_v free_a from_o paieng_v of_o tribute_n but_o this_o liberty_n he_o will_v not_o use_v lest_o he_o shall_v have_v offend_v other_o nevertheless_o he_o teach_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o it_o be_v free_a for_o he_o to_o do_v it_o when_o he_o demand_v of_o peter_n instruction_n the_o weak_a one_o must_v be_v condescend_v unto_o and_o therewithal_o teach_v so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v willing_a of_o instruction_n whether_o tribut_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v exact_v of_o bond_n man_n or_o of_o they_o that_o be_v free_a those_o that_o be_v weak_a must_v be_v take_v and_o teach_v and_o that_o they_o may_v hear_v the_o more_o attentivelie_a and_o willing_o it_o be_v good_a that_o a_o man_n humble_v himself_o to_o their_o weakness_n so_o long_o as_o we_o shall_v perceive_v they_o willing_a to_o be_v instruct_v but_o if_o we_o find_v they_o untractable_a and_o obstinate_a and_o to_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o reason_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o they_o be_v contemner_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o must_v let_v they_o go_v neither_o must_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a 6._o matt._n 7_o 6._o be_v give_v unto_o dog_n neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o care_n for_o the_o offend_n of_o they_o but_o while_o we_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o they_o that_o be_v weak_a 3._o in_o condescend_v somewhat_o unto_o the_o weak_a we_o must_v beware_v we_o offend_v not_o the_o faithful_a multitude_n the_o example_n of_o paul_n acts._n 16_o 3._o galat._n 2_o 3._o we_o must_v have_v a_o regard_n unto_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a among_o who_o if_o some_o shall_v take_v offence_n at_o thy_o dissemble_n and_o that_o the_o example_n shall_v so_o be_v lay_v hold_v on_o as_o though_o it_o ought_v in_o any_o wise_a to_o be_v do_v and_o for_o that_o in_o the_o church_n christian_a liberty_n may_v be_v hazard_v thou_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o thou_o submit_v not_o thyself_o any_o further_a lest_o perhaps_o some_o corrupt_a opinion_n arise_v of_o thy_o dissemble_n paul_n circumcise_a timothy_n when_o he_o see_v that_o it_o may_v bring_v profit_n unto_o the_o weak_a sort_n but_o as_o we_o read_v unto_o the_o galathian_o he_o will_v not_o circumcise_v titus_n for_o the_o false_a apostle_n be_v ready_a which_o will_v have_v use_v that_o example_n to_o thrust_v upon_o the_o gentile_n the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o they_o search_v out_o on_o every_o side_n by_o what_o mean_v they_o may_v spoil_v the_o church_n of_o her_o christian_a liberty_n 18._o acts._n 18_o 18._o and_o the_o same_o paul_n who_o poll_v his_o head_n at_o cenchrea_n &_o at_o jerusalem_n have_v as_o he_o say_v a_o vow_n and_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n the_o purifieng_v of_o the_o jew_n according_a to_o the_o law_n because_o he_o judge_v 26._o acts._n 21_o 26._o that_o the_o same_o will_v profit_v they_o that_o be_v weak_a will_v not_o abide_v that_o peter_n shall_v do_v the_o like_a but_o as_o we_o read_v to_o the_o galathian_o resist_v he_o to_o the_o face_n 11._o gala._n 2_o 11._o for_o the_o dissemble_n of_o peter_n be_v draw_v unto_o the_o great_a damage_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o be_v it_o think_v good_a that_o so_o many_o of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v offend_v to_o the_o intent_n there_o may_v be_v regard_n have_v of_o those_o that_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n for_o there_o be_v danger_n like_o to_o ensue_v lest_o through_o the_o authority_n of_o peter_n and_o barnabas_n there_o may_v be_v hold_v a_o opinion_n whereby_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v that_o the_o ethnik_n which_o be_v convert_v unto_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v compel_v to_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n 11_o have_v make_v this_o preface_n we_o will_v now_o speak_v of_o the_o very_a choice_n of_o meat_n and_o first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v agree_v upon_o that_o all_o meat_n be_v now_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n free_a unto_o christian_n so_o that_o nothing_o be_v add_v to_o make_v they_o unlawful_a otherwise_o if_o meat_n be_v set_v before_o we_o which_o may_v be_v think_v either_o to_o nourish_v or_o stir_v up_o lust_n it_o behove_v that_o he_o which_o find_v himself_o prone_a thereunto_o do_v forbear_v it_o likewise_o if_o there_o be_v any_o man_n of_o unperfect_a health_n and_o there_o be_v meat_n set_v before_o he_o whereby_o he_o perceive_v his_o health_n to_o be_v hurt_v he_o must_v not_o fulfil_v his_o appetite_n avoid_v superfluity_n &_o much_o cost_n must_v be_v avoid_v add_v also_o that_o we_o must_v avoid_v superfluity_n and_o too_o much_o cost_v lest_o that_o be_v spend_v which_o may_v have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o employ_v to_o better_a use_n last_o if_o there_o be_v present_v any_o of_o the_o weak_a sort_n 20._o sometime_o we_o must_v abstain_v for_o offence_n sake_n acts._n 15_o 20._o which_o may_v be_v offend_v with_o some_o kind_n of_o meat_n as_o in_o time_n past_a the_o jew_n new_o convert_v do_v abhor_v flesh_n strangle_v &_o blood_n yea_o &_o it_o have_v be_v convenient_a for_o the_o ethnik_n to_o have_v abstein_v because_o of_o the_o weakness_n of_o they_o that_o sit_v at_o meat_n if_o it_o have_v be_v tell_v they_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o feast_n that_o the_o meat_n set_v before_o they_o have_v be_v offer_v unto_o idol_n etc._n rom._n 14_o 13_o 1._o cor._n 8_o 10._o etc._n etc._n as_o paul_n write_v at_o large_a to_o the_o roman_n &_o to_o the_o corinthian_n i_o let_v pass_v that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n many_o kind_n of_o meat_n be_v forbid_v and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o in_o those_o day_n the_o law_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v sake_n abstinence_n for_o civil_a government_n sake_n there_o may_v also_o be_v add_v the_o respect_n of_o civil_a or_o politic_a government_n all_o which_o thing_n perteine_v not_o to_o the_o nature_n itself_o of_o meat_n but_o unto_o the_o circumstance_n which_o happen_v 12_o and_o that_o all_o meat_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v free_a for_o christian_n 11_o all_o meat_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v free_a for_o christian_n matt._n 15_o 11_o the_o scripture_n do_v plain_o teach_v christ_n as_o we_o read_v in_o matthew_n say_v every_o thing_n that_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n defile_v not_o man_n and_o if_o so_o be_v it_o do_v not_o defile_v by_o eat_v no_o more_o do_v it_o sanctify_v by_o forbear_v and_o the_o apostle_n write_v 13._o 1._o cor._n 6_o 13._o meat_n for_o the_o belly_n and_o the_o belly_n for_o meat_n god_n shall_v destroy_v both_o it_o and_o they_o therefore_o see_v meat_n be_v a_o thing_n temporal_a and_o to_o be_v destroy_v 8._o 1._o cor._n 8_o 8._o and_o which_o pertain_v unto_o the_o belly_n not_o to_o the_o mind_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o of_o itself_o it_o avail_v nothing_o unto_o righteousness_n or_o unrighteousness_n and_o a_o little_a before_o chapter_n in_o the_o same_o 8._o chapter_n meat_n do_v not_o commend_v we_o unto_o god_n for_o neither_o if_o we_o eat_v shall_v we_o have_v the_o more_o neither_o if_o we_o eat_v not_o shall_v we_o have_v the_o less_o which_o word_n erasmus_n weigh_v erasmus_n erasmus_n and_o therefore_o he_o write_v if_o it_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o at_o this_o day_n we_o be_v in_o nothing_o else_o
whatsoever_o else_o rather_o than_o that_o which_o behoove_v undoubted_o godly_a king_n erect_v school_n &_o college_n that_o in_o they_o young_a man_n shall_v be_v bring_v up_o to_o good_a learning_n and_o godliness_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cathedral_n church_n but_o a_o school_n be_v join_v thereunto_o at_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n do_v pantenus_n clemens_n origen_n and_o other_o most_o learned_a man_n public_o profess_v at_o this_o day_n also_o among_o the_o canoniste_n a_o place_n be_v assign_v for_o the_o schoolmaster_n but_o he_o do_v nothing_o less_o than_o teach_v the_o youth_n and_o hereof_o come_v so_o great_a darkness_n every_o where_n in_o the_o pope_n government_n 5._o 1._o sam._n 10._o 5._o either_o because_o the_o youth_n be_v not_o teach_v at_o all_o or_o else_o because_o they_o be_v teach_v wicked_a thing_n samuel_n be_v precedent_n of_o this_o college_n before_o his_o time_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o any_o such_o fellowship_n of_o prophet_n of_o take_v a_o spiritual_a charge_n look_v the_o oration_n that_o begin_v those_o cause_n 4._o in_o jud._n 4._o v._n 4._o 10_o but_o when_o as_o god_n choose_v deborah_n unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o judge_v be_v weak_a in_o sex_n he_o straight_o way_n make_v she_o very_o famous_a and_o honourable_a through_o the_o gift_n of_o prophesy_v by_o which_o grace_n and_o perhaps_o many_o other_o miracle_n more_o she_o be_v constitute_v by_o god_n and_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n as_o a_o woman_n choose_v to_o so_o great_a a_o office_n neither_o be_v only_o this_o woman_n endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n for_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o read_v of_o other_o woman_n also_o which_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n marry_o the_o sister_n of_o moses_n 36._o exod._n 15._o 20._o 1._o sam._n 2._o 1._o 2._o king_n 22._o 14._o luke_n 1._o v._o 42._o &_o 46._o &_o 2._o 36._o hanna_n the_o mother_n of_o samuel_n holda_n in_o the_o time_n of_o josias_n the_o king_n be_v prophetess_n and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o marie_n the_o virgin_n of_o elizabeth_n the_o mother_n of_o john_n and_o of_o anna_n the_o daughter_n of_o phanuel_n the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n the_o deacon_n people_n that_o woman_n prophet_n do_v open_o teach_v the_o people_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v prophetess_n neither_o think_v i_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v deny_v that_o some_o of_o those_o woman_n endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n do_v open_o teach_v the_o people_n in_o declare_v of_o those_o thing_n unto_o they_o which_o have_v be_v show_v they_o of_o god_n see_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v not_o therefore_o give_v that_o they_o shall_v lie_v hide_v but_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v further_o the_o common_a edify_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o hereby_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o what_o god_n do_v by_o some_o peculiar_a privilege_n we_o shall_v forthwith_o draw_v it_o into_o a_o example_n unto_o we_o because_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o be_v bind_v unto_o a_o ordinary_a law_n church_n 1._o tim._n 2._o 12._o 1._o cor._n 14._o 34._o why_o woman_n be_v command_v to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n whereby_o both_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n he_o command_v that_o a_o woman_n shall_v keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o silence_n command_v he_o assign_v cause_n namely_o for_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o husband_n but_o the_o office_n of_o a_o teacher_n do_v declare_v a_o certain_a authority_n over_o those_o which_o be_v teach_v which_o must_v not_o be_v attribute_v unto_o a_o woman_n over_o man_n for_o she_o be_v make_v for_o man_n who_o to_o obey_v she_o ought_v always_o to_o have_v a_o respect_n which_o thing_n be_v also_o appoint_v she_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o say_v unto_o the_o woman_n after_o sin_n be_v commit_v 16._o gen._n 3._o 16._o thy_o disposition_n shall_v be_v towards_o thy_o husband_n further_o the_o apostle_n derive_v a_o reason_n from_o the_o first_o fault_n 14._o 1._o tim._n 2._o 14._o wherein_o he_o say_v that_o eve_n be_v seduce_v and_o not_o adam_n so_o as_o if_o woman_n shall_v ordinary_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o holy_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n man_n may_v easy_o suspect_v that_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o accustom_a instrument_n will_v deceive_v the_o people_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o will_v the_o less_o esteem_v the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n if_o it_o shall_v be_v commit_v unto_o woman_n wherefore_o by_o the_o ordinary_a right_n and_o by_o the_o apostolical_a rule_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v appoint_v unto_o man_n howbeit_o if_o god_n do_v otherwise_o sometime_o yet_o can_v he_o not_o be_v just_o accuse_v for_o so_o much_o as_o all_o law_n be_v in_o his_o power_n if_o then_o sometime_o he_o send_v a_o prophetisse_n and_o adorn_v she_o with_o heavenly_a gift_n the_o same_o woman_n speak_v in_o the_o church_n must_v undoubted_o be_v hearken_v unto_o but_o yet_o so_o as_o her_o state_n be_v not_o forget_v therefore_o the_o two_o testimony_n of_o paul_n reconcile_v two_o place_n of_o paul_n be_v reconcile_v which_o seem_v to_o be_v repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o may_v easy_o be_v reconcile_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n he_o write_v that_o a_o woman_n ought_v to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n which_o toward_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 5._o he_o most_o manifest_o confirm_v howbeit_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o command_v that_o a_o man_n prophesy_v or_o pray_v shall_v have_v his_o head_n uncover_v but_o the_o woman_n while_o the_o prophesi_v shall_v have_v it_o cover_v whereby_o doubtless_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o woman_n both_o to_o speak_v and_o also_o to_o prophesy_v in_o the_o church_n for_o it_o will_v not_o seem_v that_o so_o do_v she_o shall_v have_v be_v command_v to_o cover_v her_o head_n if_o she_o be_v utter_o to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n after_o this_o sort_n the_o matter_n must_v be_v expound_v namely_o that_o the_o precept_n of_o silence_n be_v a_o general_a precept_n head_n why_o the_o woman_n that_o prophesy_v be_v command_v to_o be_v cover_v on_o their_o head_n but_o the_o other_o which_o be_v for_o cover_v of_o the_o head_n when_o they_o pray_v or_o prophesy_v pertain_v only_o to_o those_o which_o be_v prophetess_n they_o very_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o prophesy_v for_o the_o common_a edify_n of_o the_o church_n but_o lest_o they_o forget_v the_o property_n of_o their_o own_o state_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a office_n commit_v unto_o they_o shall_v wax_v proud_a they_o be_v command_v to_o have_v their_o head_n cover_v whereby_o they_o may_v understand_v that_o they_o have_v yet_o the_o power_n of_o man_n above_o they_o moreover_o where_o in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n to_o titus_n 3._o tit._n 2._o 3._o it_o be_v command_v that_o the_o elder_a woman_n shall_v admonish_v the_o young_a woman_n of_o temperance_n &_o that_o they_o shall_v love_v their_o husband_n and_o child_n and_o shall_v likewise_o be_v diligent_a housewife_n in_o their_o family_n this_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v as_o touch_v public_a doctrine_n or_o ecclesiastical_a sermon_n but_o of_o private_a exhortation_n which_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v use_v by_o the_o elder_a sort_n unto_o the_o young_a 12_o in_o rom._n 12_o 11_o when_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o twelve_o to_o the_o roman_n he_o that_o distribute_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o sincerity_n deacon_n the_o office_n of_o deacon_n he_o touch_v the_o office_n of_o deacon_n as_o they_o be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o aught_o also_o to_o be_v in_o our_o time_n their_o office_n be_v to_o distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a the_o alm_n and_o oblation_n of_o the_o faithful_a let_v they_o do_v their_o office_n say_v he_o with_o simplicity_n let_v they_o withhold_v nothing_o by_o craft_n and_o ill_a practice_n for_o naughty_a and_o deceitful_a man_n when_o they_o have_v deal_v in_o public_a receipt_n do_v nothing_o sincere_o but_o use_v wonder_a guile_n and_o subtlety_n these_o thing_n will_v paul_n have_v to_o be_v remove_v from_o this_o kind_n of_o ministry_n other_o think_v that_o in_o give_v with_o simplicity_n he_o mean_v without_o any_o respect_n unto_o worldly_a praise_n which_o some_o seek_v for_o in_o the_o bestow_n of_o other_o man_n alm_n but_o the_o first_o interpretation_n in_o my_o judgement_n seem_v most_o fit_a and_o whereas_o he_o add_v he_o that_o rule_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o carefulness_n although_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v many_o
say_n of_o dioclesian_n to_o a_o certain_a philosopher_n that_o desire_v immunity_n thy_o profession_n say_v he_o much_o differ_v from_o thy_o petition_n for_o thy_o philosophy_n teach_v that_o affection_n ought_v to_o be_v overcome_v but_o thou_o plain_o declare_v thyself_o to_o be_v overcome_v with_o greedy_a desire_n and_o covetousness_n so_o the_o clergy_n when_o as_o above_o all_o other_o they_o profess_v religion_n &_o charity_n do_v yet_o nevertheless_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v compel_v to_o obey_v magistrate_n or_o to_o succour_v the_o commonweal_n 22_o in_o what_o sort_n the_o priest_n of_o egypt_n be_v exempt_v gen._n 47._o 22_o 11_o thomas_n aquinas_n think_v that_o this_o exemption_n of_o the_o clergy_n come_v by_o the_o privilege_n of_o prince_n howbeit_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o he_o cit_v a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o land_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v free_a from_o the_o pension_n of_o the_o five_o part_n but_o if_o a_o man_n diligent_o consider_v the_o whole_a matter_n he_o shall_v easy_o find_v why_o their_o land_n be_v free_a from_o that_o five_o part_n namely_o because_o they_o be_v not_o sell_v to_o the_o king_n when_o the_o famine_n be_v very_o great_a for_o the_o priest_n have_v corn_n of_o the_o king_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o compel_v to_o buy_v corn_n wherefore_o the_o possession_n of_o their_o land_n abide_v whole_a unto_o they_o which_o nevertheless_o may_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o king_n be_v charge_v with_o other_o custom_n and_o tribute_n although_o they_o be_v not_o comprehend_v in_o that_o general_a pension_n of_o the_o fifth_z part_n other_o object_n that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o esdras_n 23._o esdras_n 7._o verse_n 23._o that_o king_n artaxerxes_n command_v that_o no_o tribute_n shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o priest_n nothing_o the_o priest_n of_o israel_n be_v just_o exempt_v because_o they_o possess_v nothing_o but_o this_o be_v no_o marvel_n see_v they_o possess_v not_o land_n among_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n but_o only_o live_v of_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n caesar_n also_o write_v that_o the_o druid_n among_o the_o frenchman_n pay_v neither_o tribute_n nor_o custom_n as_o other_o do_v but_o that_o they_o be_v altogether_o frank_a and_o free_a but_o pliny_n in_o his_o 16._o book_n and_o 44._o chapter_n write_v that_o those_o druid_n have_v nothing_o wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o they_o pay_v no_o tribute_n i_o speak_v not_o these_o thing_n because_o i_o think_v that_o prince_n may_v not_o remit_v some_o of_o their_o tribute_n to_o ecclesiastical_a man_n which_o diligent_o execute_v their_o office_n and_o keep_v hospitality_n and_o succour_v the_o necessity_n of_o other_o so_o that_o a_o regard_n be_v have_v that_o this_o turn_v not_o to_o the_o harm_n of_o other_o and_o that_o such_o indulgence_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o maintain_v their_o pomp_n i_o grant_v in_o deed_n that_o prince_n may_v not_o do_v this_o howbeit_o i_o affirm_v that_o ecclesiastical_a man_n can_v by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n claim_n unto_o themselves_o any_o such_o immunity_n and_o that_o they_o can_v in_o conscience_n deny_v tribute_n unto_o prince_n if_o it_o be_v demand_v neither_o ought_v pope_n boniface_n by_o any_o mean_n to_o have_v challenge_v unto_o himself_o a_o right_a to_o make_v that_o mad_a decree_n it_o be_v already_o conclude_v by_o paul_n that_o all_o people_n do_v owe_v obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o public_a governor_n neither_o ought_v the_o godly_a say_v chrysostome_n to_o take_v it_o in_o ill_a part_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o magistrate_n although_o they_o themselves_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o appoint_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o their_o glory_n be_v not_o in_o the_o state_n of_o this_o life_n they_o wait_v until_o christ_n appear_v 4._o col._n 3._o 4._o in_o who_o their_o life_n be_v as_o yet_o hide_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o count_v it_o a_o thing_n grievous_a if_o they_o rise_v up_o if_o they_o uncover_v the_o head_n if_o they_o give_v the_o upper_a hand_n if_o they_o obey_v magistrate_n here_o be_v nothing_o unméete_a or_o uncomelie_a nay_o rather_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v by_o they_o according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o full_a decent_a and_o worthy_a thing_n the_o three_o chapter_n whether_o two_o head_n may_v be_v in_o the_o church_n one_o visible_a and_o another_o invisible_a 3._o in_o 1._o sam._n at_o the_o end_n 1._o sam._n 8._o 7._o jud._n 8._o 23._o look_v after_o in_o pl_z 6._o act._n 19_o look_v in_o jud._n 8._o 23._o &_o 18._o at_o the_o beginning_n in_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 3._o they_o do_v not_o say_v god_n unto_o samuel_n reject_v thou_o but_o i_o and_o gedeon_n in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v offer_v unto_o he_o i_o say_v he_o will_v not_o reign_v over_o you_o but_o the_o lord_n shall_v reign_v over_o you_o here_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v whether_o when_o he_o be_v choose_v king_n god_n seize_v to_o govern_v his_o people_n or_o whether_o he_o persevere_v to_o govern_v together_o with_o king_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o king_n to_o be_v look_v upon_o and_o another_o that_o may_v not_o be_v see_v hereof_o also_o arise_v another_o question_n for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a why_o also_o can_v there_o not_o be_v two_o head_n in_o the_o church_n for_o if_o god_n may_v be_v king_n together_o with_o a_o visible_a king_n why_o may_v he_o not_o together_o with_o a_o visible_a head_n be_v a_o invisible_a head_n but_o these_o two_o question_n can_v be_v resolve_v both_o after_o one_o manner_n as_o to_o the_o first_o the_o rule_n of_o a_o king_n do_v not_o exclude_v the_o empire_n of_o god_n nay_o rather_o a_o king_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o execute_v his_o office_n king_n god_n rule_v together_o with_o good_a king_n for_o god_n rule_v together_o with_o good_a king_n why_o then_o do_v the_o lord_n say_v they_o have_v not_o reject_v thou_o but_o i_o wherefore_o say_v gedeon_n i_o will_v not_o reign_v over_o you_o but_o the_o lord_n shall_v reign_v over_o you_o these_o thing_n be_v therefore_o say_v because_o the_o people_n will_v innovate_v the_o state_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n by_o god_n prescribe_v for_o this_o be_v to_o despise_v god_n himself_o for_o if_o god_n describe_v this_o state_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n why_o shall_v the_o same_o be_v change_v by_o the_o people_n but_o yet_o god_n do_v not_o for_o that_o cause_n depart_v with_o his_o governance_n which_o he_o before_o have_v over_o the_o people_n on_o the_o other_o part_n they_o seem_v to_o reject_v god_n because_o they_o go_v about_o to_o change_v the_o common_a weal_n without_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n further_n god_n reign_v together_o with_o good_a king_n because_o they_o not_o where_o else_o receive_v the_o form_n of_o govern_v the_o common_a weal_n than_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n again_o because_o they_o be_v not_o only_o careful_a that_o the_o body_n and_o good_n of_o subject_n shall_v be_v well_o provide_v for_o for_o that_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o herdman_n and_o shepherd_n not_o of_o a_o king_n but_o that_o man_n may_v live_v right_o and_o with_o virtue_n and_o godliness_n but_o they_o be_v not_o always_o godly_a nor_o they_o do_v not_o always_o desire_v the_o rule_n of_o govern_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n whether_o do_v god_n reign_v also_o with_o these_o man_n these_o thing_n it_o behoove_v to_o distinguish_v wise_o there_o be_v no_o government_n so_o evil_a government_n there_o be_v many_o good_a thing_n even_o in_o ill_a government_n that_o have_v not_o also_o many_o good_n thing_n who_o be_v ever_o worse_o than_o nero_n yet_o public_a peace_n be_v maintain_v under_o he_o there_o be_v precedent_n in_o the_o province_n the_o law_n be_v execute_v paul_n by_o use_v of_o nero_n name_n 11._o acts._n 25._o 11._o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o be_v not_o deliver_v to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o jew_n when_o he_o be_v to_o be_v beat_v with_o rod_n he_o cry_v out_o that_o he_o be_v a_o citizen_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o he_o escape_v he_o be_v also_o dismiss_v out_o of_o prison_n 17._o jame._n 1._o 17._o these_o thing_n be_v good_a can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v of_o god_n for_o every_o good_a thing_n be_v of_o the_o father_n of_o light_n from_o above_o but_o if_o thou_o ask_v of_o the_o wickedness_n of_o ungodlie_a king_n those_o thing_n they_o have_v of_o themselves_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o need_n that_o because_o of_o they_o man_n shall_v complain_v of_o god_n for_o god_n do_v blame_v reproove_v punish_v and_o condemn_v those_o thing_n yet_o as_o they_o be_v punishment_n
a_o part_n be_v whole_o hold_v in_o gross_a of_o every_o one_o he_o add_v further_a that_o whosoever_o will_v arrogate_v this_o title_n unto_o himself_o be_v antichrist_n here_o we_o will_v add_v the_o minor_a but_o the_o pope_n challenge_v unto_o himself_o this_o title_n wherefore_o the_o papist_n must_v bear_v it_o with_o a_o indifferent_a mind_n if_o we_o call_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n last_o in_o the_o epistle_n unto_o john_n of_o constantinople_n what_o answer_n say_v he_o will_v thou_o make_v before_o the_o tribunal_n seat_n of_o christ_n who_o office_n thou_o have_v so_o arrogantlie_o usurp_v here_o gregory_n confess_v that_o this_o title_n be_v meet_v for_o christ_n only_o but_o the_o foundation_n &_o strength_n of_o these_o reason_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o reverse_v the_o order_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v church_n mat._n 16._o 18._o whether_o christ_n institute_v one_o head_n in_o the_o church_n 4_o yea_o very_o say_v they_o christ_n himself_o appoint_v one_o head_n in_o the_o church_n for_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n etc._n etc._n but_o these_o man_n lean_a to_o a_o ruinous_a foundation_n peter_n confess_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n thou_o be_v peter_n etc._n etc._n expound_v then_o christ_n thou_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v peter_n because_o thou_o have_v confess_v the_o rock_n that_o be_v i_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n which_o thou_o have_v confess_v i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n but_o now_o say_v paul_n 11_o 1._o cor._n 3._o 11_o none_o can_v lay_v any_o other_o foundation_n but_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v christ_n jesus_n but_o if_o at_o any_o time_n we_o read_v among_o the_o father_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v foundation_n as_o in_o the_o apocalips_n we_o read_v that_o there_o be_v twelve_o foundation_n of_o new_a jerusalem_n 14_o apo._n 21._o 14_o foundation_n be_v not_o here_o put_v for_o the_o root_n of_o the_o building_n but_o for_o the_o xij_o stone_n which_o be_v next_o unto_o the_o foundation_n for_o otherwise_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n even_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o they_o object_n that_o the_o key_n be_v commit_v unto_o peter_n ye●eies_n of_o ye●eies_n yea_o rather_o they_o be_v give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n without_o difference_n for_o christ_n give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o all_o 22._o joh._n 20._o 22._o and_o say_v unto_o all_o 19_o mat._n 28._o 19_o go_v you_o preach_v you_o the_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n be_v the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n but_o unto_o peter_n it_o be_v say_v 15._o joh._n 21._o 15._o feed_v feed_v yea_o rather_o they_o be_v all_o bid_v and_o they_o ought_v to_o feed_v sheep_n 1._o pet._n 5._o 2._o of_o those_o word_n feed_v any_o sheep_n and_o peter_n in_o his_o epistle_n write_v unto_o the_o other_o bishop_n feed_v you_o as_o much_o as_o in_o you_o lie_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n why_o then_o be_v it_o chief_o say_v unto_o peter_n before_o other_o feed_v thou_o 69_o mat._n 26._o 69_o because_o when_o he_o have_v thrice_o open_o deny_v christ_n he_o may_v have_v seem_v to_o have_v fall_v from_o his_o first_o dignity_n wherefore_o christ_n as_o though_o he_o have_v restore_v he_o into_o his_o place_n bid_v he_o by_o name_n to_o feed_v howbeit_o what_o he_o speak_v unto_o he_o alone_o he_o speak_v unto_o all_o by_o this_o also_o he_o signify_v that_o he_o which_o will_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v endue_v with_o singular_a love_n towards_o christ_n paul_n although_o after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v make_v a_o apostle_n 6._o gal._n 2._o 6._o yet_o he_o say_v that_o he_o learn_v nothing_o of_o peter_n or_o confer_v any_o thing_n with_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o if_o so_o be_v that_o peter_n have_v be_v the_o prince_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nothing_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v do_v without_o his_o authority_n and_o sufferance_n nay_o rather_o peter_n and_o paul_n so_o allot_v the_o province_n between_o they_o 7._o ibid._n ver_fw-la 7._o as_o peter_n teach_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o paul_n among_o the_o gentile_n 3._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 3._o further_o peter_n admonish_v the_o bishop_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o reign_v over_o the_o clergy_n therefore_o how_o may_v any_o one_o obtain_v the_o kingdom_n over_o other_o and_o bear_v himself_o as_o head_n but_o this_o reason_n be_v first_o of_o all_o to_o be_v note_v john_n the_o apostle_n live_v until_o the_o time_n of_o domitian_n peter_n die_v at_o rome_n under_o nero._n him_n do_v linus_n cletus_n and_o clemens_n succeed_v now_o if_o they_o will_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n they_o must_v of_o necessity_n confess_v that_o john_n the_o apostle_n be_v subject_a unto_o clement_n he_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o apostle_n be_v subject_a unto_o he_o so_o then_o let_v they_o either_o deny_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o if_o they_o will_v not_o let_v they_o subject_v the_o apostles-unto_a they_o the_o epistle_n of_o clemens_n although_o they_o be_v manifest_o feign_v and_o invent_v yet_o be_v they_o oftentimes_o cite_v &_o high_o esteem_v by_o they_o then_o let_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o also_o to_o consider_v what_o he_o write_v his_o epistle_n unto_o james_n the_o apostle_n have_v this_o inscription_n clemens_n unto_o james_n bishop_n clemens_n call_v james_n the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n the_o brother_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n rule_v all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v found_v every_o where_o by_o his_o providence_n wherefore_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v translate_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o this_o man_n the_o universal_a church_n can_v be_v rule_v by_o one_o man_n how_o may_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v rule_v by_o one_o man_n sometime_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v the_o great_a yet_o can_v it_o not_o embrace_v the_o parthian_n scythian_n indian_n &_o ethiopian_n and_o although_o it_o obtain_v not_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o as_o titus_n linius_n say_v it_o be_v weary_a of_o his_o own_o burden_n even_o so_o these_o man_n when_o they_o see_v that_o no_o one_o man_n may_v embrace_v the_o whole_a church_n they_o institute_v as_o it_o be_v a_o quadrumuirat_n that_o be_v that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v rule_v by_o four_o patriarch_n namely_o that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n shall_v be_v over_o syria_n the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n over_o egypt_n and_o ethiopia_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n over_o asia_n greece_n and_o illyricum_n the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o the_o west_n part_n but_o what_o come_v to_o pass_v at_o the_o length_n very_o this_o that_o they_o strive_v among_o themselves_o and_o rend_v the_o world_n in_o sunder_o for_o each_o one_o will_v reign_v over_o all_o and_o this_o welnéere_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v the_o end_n of_o humane_a counsel_n but_o paul_n say_v that_o he_o take_v care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n i_o grant_v but_o yet_o he_o say_v he_o have_v a_o care_n not_o a_o dominion_n and_o that_o therefore_o he_o rather_o write_v unto_o admonish_v counsel_v and_o reproove_v the_o church_n but_o neve●_n call_v nor_o can_v have_v call_v himself_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 5_o but_o we_o be_v sometime_o wont_v to_o say_v head_n the_o church_n will_v be_v a_o monster_n if_o it_o have_v two_o head_n if_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v one_o head_n in_o heaven_n and_o a_o other_o in_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v double_a head_a and_o so_o seem_v a_o monster_n this_o argument_n the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n deride_v for_o a_o wife_n also_o have_v both_o her_o own_o head_n and_o her_o husband_n so_o by_o this_o mean_v every_o wife_n shall_v be_v a_o monster_n rochester_n the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n but_o i_o marvel_v at_o rochester_n be_v so_o great_a a_o logician_n that_o he_o note_v not_o a_o false_a argument_n in_o that_o which_o he_o report_v of_o the_o wife_n for_o those_o two_o head_n of_o the_o wife_n be_v not_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o order_n for_o one_o be_v natural_a and_o other_o be_v economical_a but_o it_o will_v be_v a_o monstrous_a thing_n if_o a_o wife_n shall_v have_v two_o natural_a head_n or_o two_o economical_a head_n or_o two_o husband_n but_o they_o add_v pope_n the_o difference_n which_o they_o put_v between_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n the_o pope_n be_v only_o a_o ministerial_a head_n he_o pour_v not_o into_o the_o church_n sense_n and_o spiritual_a motion_n for_o that_o be_v only_o the_o part_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o the_o pope_n and_o christ_n be_v not_o two_o head_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n church_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o confess_v to_o
be_v only_o the_o civil_a head_n of_o the_o church_n if_o thou_o require_v of_o papist_n they_o will_v never_o grant_v that_o their_o pope_n be_v only_o the_o civil_a head_n of_o the_o church_n nay_o rather_o they_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v call_v spiritual_a father_n so_o as_o they_o have_v two_o head_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n for_o they_o will_v never_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v enclose_v within_o these_o bound_n for_o they_o dispense_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o forbid_v marriage_n they_o apply_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n they_o ordain_v new_a sacrament_n they_o sell_v pardon_n this_o pertain_v not_o to_o a_o civil_a head_n wherefore_o let_v they_o grant_v that_o their_o church_n have_v two_o head_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o monster_n but_o i_o will_v deal_v frankelie_a admit_v the_o pope_n be_v a_o civil_a head_n head_a that_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o civil_a head_n yet_o the_o church_n be_v double_a head_a yet_o do_v you_o fall_v into_o the_o self_n same_o error_n for_o see_v the_o magistrate_n also_o be_v a_o civil_a head_n you_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v two_o civil_a head_n both_o of_o one_o order_n and_o that_o so_o your_o church_n be_v a_o monster_n but_o these_o man_n as_o they_o be_v importunate_a dream_v of_o two_o head_n first_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o civil_a head_n of_o his_o minister_n and_o so_o be_v one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 1_o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v be_v civil_a head_n of_o his_o minister_n rom._n 13._o 1_o for_o they_o will_v have_v minister_n to_o be_v exempt_v from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n but_o this_o be_v a_o vain_a conceit_n for_o paul_n command_v that_o every_o soul_n shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o the_o civil_a power_n he_o exempt_v none_o yea_o and_o chrysostome_n say_v that_o neither_o the_o apostle_n nor_o evangelist_n ought_v to_o be_v except_v peter_n also_o exhort_v minister_n that_o they_o shall_v obey_v the_o civil_a power_n wherefore_o in_o vain_a do_v they_o babble_v and_o ridiculous_o do_v they_o adjoine_v two_o head_n unto_o their_o minister_n way_n whether_o the_o magistrate_n may_v bear_v rule_n over_o preacher_n minister_n subject_a two_o manner_n of_o way_n what_o then_o will_v thou_o say_v shall_v the_o magistrate_n bear_v rule_n over_o minister_n and_o preacher_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o sacrament_n be_v subject_a to_o no_o potentate_n but_o minister_n be_v subject_a two_o manner_n of_o way_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n and_o of_o their_o function_n for_o if_o either_o they_o live_v wicked_o or_o do_v not_o their_o duty_n they_o may_v be_v both_o reject_v by_o the_o magistrate_n and_o deprive_v 7_o look_v part_n 4._o p●_n 13._o act_n 7_o 6_o but_o these_o man_n still_o dream_v of_o one_o civil_a power_n that_o be_v ecclesiastical_a and_o of_o a_o other_o that_o be_v profane_a the_o one_o of_o the_o which_o they_o attribute_v unto_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o other_o unto_o the_o magistrate_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o as_o much_o as_o pertain_v unto_o ecclesiastical_a power_n the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o as_o say_v aristotle_n in_o his_o politike_n must_v provide_v that_o all_o man_n do_v their_o duty_n both_o lawyer_n physician_n husband_n man_n apothecary_n among_o who_o we_o may_v also_o reckon_v minister_n and_o preacher_n what_o need_n have_v we_o here_o to_o multiply_v head_n solomon_n david_n &_o josias_n be_v civil_a magistrate_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o think_v religion_n to_o be_v without_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o charge_n constantine_n theodosius_n and_o justinian_n think_v upon_o nothing_o more_o than_o to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n so_o then_o there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o these_o man_n shall_v raise_v up_o a_o new_a head_n unto_o themselves_o in_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o for_o the_o set_n up_o of_o tyranny_n for_o the_o church_n have_v elder_n who_o must_v provide_v in_o what_o order_n all_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v and_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v in_o order_n the_o magistrate_n ought_v to_o provide_v ungodlie_a what_o the_o church_n must_v do_v if_o the_o magistrate_n be_v ungodlie_a but_o what_o if_o the_o magistrate_n be_v wicked_a yet_o there_o be_v a_o church_n there_o be_v elder_n there_o be_v bishop_n by_o these_o it_o must_v be_v decree_v and_o appoint_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v in_o religion_n and_o this_o perhaps_o be_v it_o church_n how_o the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o his_o own_o church_n why_o the_o king_n of_o england_n will_v be_v call_v head_n of_o his_o own_o church_n next_o unto_o christ_n for_o he_o think_v that_o that_o power_n which_o the_o pope_n usurp_v to_o himself_o be_v his_o and_o in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n pertain_v to_o himself_o the_o title_n indeed_o be_v unwonted_a and_o displease_v many_o godly_a man_n howbeit_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o thing_n itself_o he_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o which_o we_o have_v now_o say_v 7_o but_o they_o object_n that_o after_o the_o pope_n 7._o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v now_o make_v head_n ought_v to_o be_v remove_v 1._o sam._n 8._o 7._o once_o become_v a_o monarch_n and_o that_o we_o see_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o thereby_o exclude_v he_o must_v not_o rash_o be_v remove_v for_o so_o the_o israelites_n although_o they_o have_v make_v themselves_o a_o king_n without_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o be_v once_o appoint_v they_o do_v not_o afterward_o revolt_v from_o he_o i_o answer_v the_o reason_n be_v not_o alike_o for_o the_o israelite_n in_o create_v their_o king_n have_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n which_o thing_n if_o these_o man_n can_v show_v of_o their_o pope_n we_o will_v confess_v that_o the_o reason_n on_o both_o part_n be_v alike_o but_o they_o can_v do_v it_o nay_o rather_o they_o have_v the_o contrary_a out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n wherefore_o we_o conclude_v first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a for_o the_o church_n to_o have_v a_o double_a head_n secondlie_o that_o although_o it_o may_v be_v agreeable_a yet_o that_o one_o mortal_a man_n can_v rule_v and_o regard_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o that_o do_v far_o excee_v man_n strength_n suffer_v whether_o civil_a prince_n that_o have_v more_o province_n than_o he_o can_v outsee_v be_v to_o be_v suffer_v but_o thou_o will_v say_v if_o this_o reason_n be_v of_o force_n even_o a_o civil_a monarch_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v suffer_v who_o have_v more_o province_n than_o he_o be_v able_a to_o take_v the_o charge_n of_o wherefore_o if_o a_o king_n be_v not_o able_a to_o provide_v for_o all_o that_o be_v his_o shall_v we_o revolt_v from_o he_o as_o you_o have_v do_v from_o the_o pope_n i_o answer_v that_o these_o empire_n larglie_o extend_v can_v be_v without_o fault_n for_o see_v the_o king_n can_v deal_v in_o all_o thing_n themselves_o they_o commit_v their_o province_n unto_o unsatiable_a and_o greedy_a cormorant_n by_o who_o the_o people_n be_v miserable_o draw_v dry_a and_o suck_v out_o and_o in_o ancient_a time_n when_o thing_n be_v better_a several_a city_n have_v several_a king_n we_o read_v that_o nynus_fw-la first_fw-mi make_v ware_n upon_o the_o nation_n adjoin_v and_o amplify_v his_o border_n so_o we_o read_v of_o so_o many_o king_n that_o be_v in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n be_v no_o very_o great_a region_n indeed_o it_o be_v a_o ill_a thing_n to_o have_v so_o large_a a_o dominion_n yet_o must_v not_o the_o people_n for_o that_o cause_n revolt_v from_o their_o king_n howbeit_o if_o they_o will_v command_v any_o thing_n against_o god_n they_o must_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v hear_v christ_n come_v not_o to_o change_v the_o order_n of_o common_a weal_n for_o my_o kingdom_n say_v he_o be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n 36._o joh._n 18._o 36._o neither_o do_v paul_n at_o any_o time_n persuade_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o defection_n from_o nero._n so_o as_o we_o have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v obey_v the_o magistrate_n whosoeever_n he_o be_v but_o we_o have_v no_o word_n to_o obey_v the_o pope_n rome_n if_o there_o be_v one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o the_o ●…nt_a aught_o to_o be_v at_o rome_n 8_o but_o admit_v that_o there_o may_v be_v some_o one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n why_o shall_v he_o rather_o be_v at_o rome_n than_o else_o where_o because_o peter_n say_v they_o sit_v in_o rome_n first_o that_o do_v not_o sufficient_o appear_v for_o by_o some_o it_o be_v deny_v but_o be_v it_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n he_o be_v also_o at_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n why_o then_o shall_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o these_o city_n be_v
head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o peter_n say_v they_o die_v at_o rome_n and_o christ_n die_v at_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v more_o we_o declare_v at_o the_o first_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o shall_v appoint_v his_o kingdom_n then_o that_o no_o one_o man_n can_v be_v overséer_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n last_o if_o he_o may_v yet_o he_o ought_v not_o any_o more_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n than_o any_o other_o bishop_n beside_o this_o the_o authority_n which_o they_o boast_v of_o either_o they_o have_v it_o of_o god_n or_o of_o man_n if_o of_o god_n let_v they_o bring_v forth_o some_o testimony_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v but_o if_o they_o will_v say_v of_o man_n yet_o man_n can_v nor_o ought_v not_o determine_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o that_o be_v to_o usurp_v upon_o a_o other_o man_n kingdom_n neither_o do_v we_o only_o shake_v off_o this_o power_n power_n the_o elder_a father_n sh●…ned_v this_o power_n but_o also_o in_o a_o manner_n all_o the_o elder_a father_n in_o the_o time_n of_o cyprian_a there_o be_v such_o as_o will_v appeal_v out_o of_o aphrica_n unto_o rome_n of_o that_o matter_n cyprian_n write_v unto_o cornelius_n let_v cause_n be_v hear_v where_o they_o be_v commit_v there_o be_v one_o bishopric_n a_o part_n whereof_o be_v through_o possess_v by_o each_o one_o apiarius_n the_o priest_n be_v condemn_v of_o his_o own_o bishop_n appeal_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o command_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v whole_o restore_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n have_v decree_v that_o if_o any_o man_n have_v appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n he_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o so_o the_o bishop_n of_o aphrica_n receive_v not_o apiarius_n &_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v not_o lawful_a unto_o the_o roman_a bishop_n unto_o they_o be_v send_v potentinus_n a_o bishop_n nice_a the_o pope_n once_o claim_v not_o from_o christ_n nor_o from_o peter_n but_o from_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o aphrican_o demand_n from_o whence_o the_o pope_n challenge_v so_o great_a authority_n he_o answer_v not_o of_o christ_n not_o of_o peter_n for_o as_o yet_o they_o become_v not_o so_o shameless_a but_o of_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a the_o aphrican_o desire_v the_o original_a copy_n the_o pope_n make_v delay_v for_o he_o have_v not_o what_o to_o show_v they_o send_v to_o alexandria_n constantinople_n and_o antioch_n in_o the_o library_n of_o which_o city_n they_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o all_o decree_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n be_v extant_a but_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v there_o to_o be_v find_v afterward_o the_o pope_n by_o no_o very_a faithful_a deal_n instead_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a foist_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardis_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o council_n be_v over_o light_n gregory_n write_v that_o this_o title_n in_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v tender_v unto_o leo_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o he_o will_v not_o accept_v the_o same_o but_o now_o as_o touch_v doctrine_n we_o shall_v find_v christ_n the_o pope_n teach_v thing_n contrary_a unto_o christ_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v teach_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o thing_n contrary_a unto_o christ_n justification_n by_o work_n invocation_n of_o the_o dead_a maim_v of_o the_o sacrament_n prayer_n in_o a_o strange_a and_o foreign_a language_n by_o these_o argument_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o head_n in_o the_o church_n beside_o christ_n adversary_n argument_n of_o the_o adversary_n 9_o now_o will_v we_o weigh_v the_o four_o strong_a argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n what_o force_n they_o bear_v first_o they_o say_v christ_n go_v into_o heaven_n head_n acts._n 1._o 9_o christ_n go_v into_o heaven_n therefore_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o other_o visible_a head_n therefore_o the_o church_n have_v need_n of_o a_o visible_a guide_n further_o christ_n love_v his_o church_n therefore_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v the_o better_o govern_v he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v provide_v for_o by_o one_o head_n for_o even_o as_o the_o body_n can_v be_v govern_v without_o the_o soul_n head_n ephe._n 5._o 25._o christ_n love_v the_o church_n therefore_o he_o will_v it_o to_o have_v a_o head_n so_o neither_o the_o church_n without_o a_o head_n thirdlie_o they_o say_v that_o the_o old_a father_n have_v always_o refuge_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o unto_o the_o head_n last_o they_o say_v the_o minister_n be_v not_o equal_a among_o themselves_o therefore_o lest_o the_o matter_n shall_v grow_v to_o a_o tumult_n one_o must_v be_v choose_v who_o shall_v be_v prefer_v among_o other_o and_o have_v a_o pre-eminence_n of_o voice_n in_o counsel_n us._n how_o christ_n remain_v with_o us._n as_o touch_v the_o first_o argument_n christ_n so_o go_v his_o way_n as_o he_o nevertheless_o remain_v perpetual_a lie_n in_o his_o church_n not_o in_o body_n but_o in_o spirit_n grace_n and_o providence_n for_o so_o he_o promise_v behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 20._o mat._n 28._o 20._o 20._o mat._n 18._o 20._o and_o whersoever_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n there_o be_o i._o wherefore_o christ_n be_v always_o with_o we_o us._n how_o christ_n remain_v with_o us._n that_o be_v in_o our_o heart_n further_o he_o leave_v his_o word_n from_o whence_o the_o form_n of_o govern_v the_o church_n must_v be_v seek_v but_o so_o thou_o will_v say_v as_o he_o can_v be_v see_v i_o grant_v it_o and_o your_o pope_n also_o when_o be_v he_o see_v of_o the_o indian_n or_o ethiopian_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v the_o pope_n have_v his_o legate_n as_o though_o christ_n have_v not_o likewise_o his_o legate_n to_o the_o second_o argument_n christ_n will_v have_v the_o church_n to_o be_v provide_v for_o therefore_o he_o will_v have_v one_o head_n thereof_o the_o argument_n follow_v not_o for_o the_o church_n may_v be_v otherwise_o provide_v for_o for_o how_o the_o church_n be_v rule_v &_o provide_v for_o the_o roman_a and_o athenian_a common_a weal_n be_v best_o administer_v and_o be_v most_o flourish_v when_o they_o be_v rule_v by_o senator_n wherefore_o in_o the_o church_n there_o may_v be_v aristocratia_fw-la that_o all_o thing_n be_v order_v and_o rule_v in_o counsel_n as_o in_o time_n past_o it_o be_v do_v among_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o what_o can_v helvetia_n be_v safe_a without_o a_o king_n yet_o so_o strong_a be_v the_o argument_n of_o pigghius_n although_o to_o himself_o he_o may_v seem_v very_o sharp_a thirdlie_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n be_v wrong_v rome_n a_o argument_n take_v of_o the_o bishops_n appeal_n to_o rome_n repair_v always_o unto_o the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o head_n i_o deny_v the_o argument_n for_o in_o the_o common_a weal_n if_o perhaps_o a_o man_n receive_v injury_n he_o fly_v unto_o some_o senator_n who_o he_o beléeve_v to_o be_v a_o good_a man_n shall_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o the_o same_o senator_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n in_o those_o day_n the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v more_o holy_a more_o learned_a and_o less_o corrupt_a than_o other_o he_o be_v of_o great_a authority_n and_o in_o great_a place_n about_o the_o emperor_n therefore_o athanasius_n chrysostome_n and_o other_o go_v unto_o he_o for_o refuge_n not_o that_o they_o take_v he_o for_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o that_o government_n of_o the_o four_o patriarch_n of_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o the_o west_n part_n do_v not_o so_o commit_v itself_o unto_o the_o roman_a bishop_n as_o unto_o their_o head_n but_o take_v his_o advice_n in_o doubtful_a cause_n and_o afterward_o refer_v the_o matter_n unto_o a_o council_n minister_n a_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o unevennesse_n of_o minister_n 10_o unto_o the_o four_o minister_n be_v not_o all_o equal_a among_o themselves_o therefore_o lest_o there_o may_v be_v a_o confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n it_o be_v necessary_a there_o shall_v be_v one_o head_n i_o answer_v he_o that_o be_v better_a learned_a &_o more_o spiritual_a holiness_n dignity_n must_v not_o be_v tie_v to_o chayer_n it_o must_v be_v give_v to_o doctrine_n &_o holiness_n let_v he_o be_v above_o the_o rest_n so_o be_v there_o very_a much_o ascribe_v to_o athanasius_n and_o basil_n not_o for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o seat_n but_o for_o doctrine_n and_o holiness_n sake_n many_o in_o all_o part_n for_o learn_v sake_n take_v counsel_n of_o augustine_n but_o the_o posterity_n bind_v all_o the_o dignity_n unto_o certain_a chair_n namely_o of_o alexandria_n constantinople_n antioch_n and_o rome_n because_o they_o hope_v that_o in_o these_o seat_n there_o
will_v always_o be_v most_o learned_a and_o holy_a bishop_n but_o it_o fall_v out_o otherwise_o for_o afterward_o the_o emperor_n choose_v bishop_n not_o the_o worthy_a but_o those_o who_o they_o most_o favour_v augustine_n being_n most_o learned_a be_v a_o bishop_n of_o hippo_n be_v a_o place_n of_o no_o great_a name_n aurelius_n be_v a_o man_n much_o more_o unlearned_a be_v bishop_n of_o carthage_n a_o famous_a city_n but_o since_o they_o fear_v confusion_n let_v the_o roman_a bishop_n sit_v in_o the_o first_o place_n in_o counsel_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o second_o place_n and_o afterward_o other_o in_o their_o place_n but_o let_v not_o one_o reign_n over_o all_o let_v the_o government_n be_v aristocratia_fw-la which_o order_n seem_v always_o the_o best_a for_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o corrupt_v many_o than_o one_o he_o it_o be_v harde●_n to_o corrupt_v many_o than_o one_o what_o title_n the_o pope_n flatterer_n have_v give_v he_o for_o even_o blind_a man_n may_v see_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v most_o shameful_o corrupt_v by_o those_o their_o flatterer_n and_o parasite_n for_o de_fw-fr electione_n &_o electi_fw-la potestate_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n fundamentum_fw-la in_o the_o gloss_n it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o man_n in_o the_o proheme_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o clement_n in_o the_o gloss_n it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o be_v neither_o god_n nor_o man_n wherefore_o he_o be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o christ_n christ_n the_o pope_n quite_o contrary_a to_o christ_n for_o christ_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n he_o be_v neither_o god_n nor_o man_n therefore_o he_o be_v either_o a_o angel_n or_o a_o beast_n but_o he_o be_v no_o angel_n therefore_o he_o be_v a_o beast_n in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-mi verborum_fw-la significatione_n in_o the_o chapter_n ad_fw-la conditorem_fw-la it_o be_v write_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o pure_a man_n this_o i_o easy_o believe_v for_o he_o be_v oftentimes_o a_o unpure_a ruffian_n gelasius_n in_o the_o decret_a the_o 9_o quaest_n 3._o chapter_n cuncta_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la the_o roman_a seat_n say_v he_o ought_v to_o judge_n of_o all_o man_n none_o of_o it_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o all_o man_n to_o appeal_v unto_o it_o and_o from_o it_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a the_o same_o may_v condemn_v those_o that_o be_v absolve_v in_o counsel_n and_o absolve_v they_o that_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o extravagant_n de_n concessione_n praebendarum_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n ad_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la none_n ought_v to_o say_v unto_o the_o pope_n sir_n why_o do_v thou_o this_o and_o in_o quaest_n 2._o in_o the_o chapter_n abtulisti_fw-la and_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o anacletus_fw-la god_n be_v the_o father_n because_o he_o have_v make_v the_o church_n be_v the_o mother_n because_o it_o have_v regenerate_v here_o of_o panormitanus_fw-la in_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n therefore_o say_v he_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n church_n the_o pope_n must_v obey_v the_o church_n therefore_o he_o must_v obey_v the_o church_n which_o nevertheless_o eugenius_n and_o paul_n the_o three_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n will_v not_o but_o i_o of_o these_o word_n do_v also_o gather_v a_o other_o thing_n he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o head_n he_o be_v the_o son_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o the_o spouse_n unless_o he_o will_v confess_v himself_o to_o be_v incestuous_a of_o the_o dignity_n and_o worthiness_n of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n look_v the_o sermon_n upon_o a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o 3._o of_o king_n also_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n look_v the_o sermon_n upon_o a_o place_n in_o the_o 20._o of_o john_n 23._o john_n 20._o 3._o verse_n 23._o who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v etc._n etc._n at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o book_n the_o four_o chapter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o tradition_n of_o the_o discern_a of_o spirit_n of_o counsel_n father_n and_o of_o the_o canon_n which_o they_o call_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n here_o be_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v of_o us._n end_n in_o 1._o sa._n 14._o at_o the_o end_n the_o first_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o bishop_n &_o ecclesiastical_a man_n to_o set_v forth_o such_o manner_n of_o law_n and_o decree_n second_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a what_o manner_n of_o law_n those_o aught_o to_o be_v three_o obey_v that_o magistrate_n &_o law_n must_v be_v obey_v what_o force_n they_o may_v have_v to_o bind_v the_o conscience_n as_o touch_v the_o first_o we_o know_v that_o all_o godly_a man_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v prince_n and_o magistrate_n 5._o rom._n 13._o 5._o and_o that_o as_o paul_n say_v for_o conscience_n sake_n 27._o ephe._n 6._o 5._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 18._o mat._n 17._o 27._o peter_n and_o paul_n command_v servant_n to_o obey_v their_o master_n even_o though_o they_o be_v froward_a christ_n himself_o pay_v tribute_n and_o custom_n and_o be_v never_o against_o the_o law_n we_o be_v command_v to_o obey_v parent_n 12._o exo._n 20._o 12._o and_o the_o magistrate_n be_v in_o stead_n of_o a_o parent_n as_o unto_o who_o our_o parent_n have_v refer_v all_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n solomon_n in_o the_o proverbe_n say_v 21._o pro._n 24._o 21._o fear_v god_n and_o honour_n the_o king_n and_o meddle_v not_o with_o seditious_a man_n for_o their_o destruction_n be_v at_o hand_n but_o this_o be_v true_a so_o long_o as_o they_o command_v nothing_o against_o the_o lord_n for_o if_o that_o happen_v we_o must_v obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n albeit_o in_o the_o civil_a law_n there_o be_v certain_a thing_n belong_v unto_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o city_n some_o unto_o decency_n only_o it_o be_v for_o necessity_n that_o man_n shall_v punish_v offender_n unto_o decency_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o matron_n to_o marry_v in_o the_o time_n of_o mourning_n which_o be_v provide_v for_o by_o the_o roman_a law_n further_n his_o purpose_n also_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v who_o make_v the_o law_n for_o some_o thing_n he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v straitlie_o and_o through_o observe_v and_o that_o some_o thing_n shall_v be_v certain_a provocation_n and_o admonition_n last_o in_o these_o light_a sort_n of_o decree_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o nothing_o he_o violate_v by_o contempt_n the_o effect_n be_v that_o man_n see_v they_o be_v not_o bear_v to_o themselves_o but_o to_o the_o common_a weal_n shall_v endeavour_v with_o all_o their_o care_n to_o obey_v law_n 2_o but_o some_o think_v that_o bishop_n may_v not_o make_v law_n law_n whether_o bishop_n may_v make_v law_n and_o thus_o to_o say_v they_o be_v move_v by_o no_o small_a or_o obscure_a reason_n for_o first_o they_o demand_v from_o whence_o they_o shall_v have_v that_o part_n i_o speak_v here_o of_o bishop_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n not_o in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v civil_a prince_n for_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o matter_n be_v otherwise_o that_o power_n they_o have_v not_o of_o christ_n for_o he_o neither_o make_v law_n nor_o yet_o ever_o give_v such_o commandment_n to_o his_o apostle_n wherefore_o if_o bishop_n be_v so_o send_v from_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v send_v from_o the_o father_n they_o can_v make_v law_n further_o it_o behoove_v that_o they_o which_o make_v law_n shall_v have_v dominion_n 3._o 1._o pet._n 5._o 3._o but_o peter_n warn_v bishop_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o bear_v rule_n over_o the_o clergy_n beside_o he_o that_o write_v law_n it_o behoove_v he_o have_v a_o interest_n to_o punish_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o pandect_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la &_o senatus_n consultis_fw-la out_o of_o demosthenes_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o law_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o law_n be_v a_o lawful_a correction_n of_o offence_n commit_v willing_o or_o unwilling_o but_o the_o church_n have_v not_o the_o sword_n or_o power_n of_o punish_v moreover_o where_o the_o law_n be_v there_o of_o necessity_n must_v follow_v transgression_n such_o be_v the_o infirmity_n of_o our_o nature_n 12._o 1._o cor._n 7._o 39_o jam._n 4._o 12._o but_o paul_n will_v not_o ensnare_v any_o man_n and_o james_n say_v in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n there_o be_v one_o lawmaker_n who_o can_v save_v and_o destroy_v and_o esaie_n in_o the_o 33._o 22._o esa_n 33._o 22._o chapter_n thou_o be_v our_o king_n thou_o be_v our_o judge_n thou_o be_v our_o lawgiver_n but_o the_o canon_n decree_v far_o otherwise_o law_n the_o canon_n have_v licence_v they_o to_o make_v law_n yea_o &_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o they_o which_o may_v make_v law_n they_o give_v the_o first_o place_n unto_o the_o pope_n the_o second_o unto_o the_o counsel_n and_o bishop_n the_o
east-church_n the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o respect_n forsooth_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o seat_n or_o rather_o the_o tyranny_n of_o rome_n seventhlie_a they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o excommunication_n and_o execration_n by_o which_o they_o curse_v we_o be_v faithful_a man_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n godly_a the_o papist_n persecute_v the_o godly_a do_v most_o cruel_o persecute_v &_o destroy_v we_o with_o sword_n violence_n prison_n banishment_n confiscation_n of_o good_n and_o final_o with_o flame_n and_o fire_n eightlie_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o godly_a man_n shall_v be_v conversant_a together_o with_o sinner_n reformation_n the_o papist_n admit_v no_o reformation_n so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v any_o hope_n of_o they_o remain_v and_o while_o they_o abide_v to_o hear_v those_o which_o warn_v they_o but_o these_o man_n have_v stop_v their_o ear_n like_o adder_n neither_o can_v they_o abide_v any_o word_n of_o man_n admonish_v they_o they_o have_v be_v cry_v upon_o of_o long_a time_n and_o they_o compel_v of_o force_n confess_v that_o many_o great_a error_n be_v creep_v in_o into_o the_o church_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o either_o show_n or_o amend_v any_o certain_a counsel_n have_v be_v hold_v namely_o of_o constance_n basill_n florence_n and_o trent_n welnéere_o within_o our_o age_n or_o the_o age_n of_o our_o father_n yet_o be_v there_o not_o correct_v in_o the_o church_n so_o much_o as_o one_o trifle_a thing_n or_o error_n or_o abuse_v so_o as_o they_o seem_v now_o past_a hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o experience_n teach_v that_o in_o live_v with_o they_o the_o truth_n be_v rather_o hide_v and_o weaken_v than_o that_o they_o be_v become_v the_o better_a wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o we_o depart_v from_o they_o for_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o very_a same_o cause_n depart_v from_o the_o jew_n 46._o act._n 13._o 46._o see_v they_o cast_v away_o the_o word_n of_o god_n council_n the_o papist_n mislike_v of_o a_o christian_a council_n ninthlie_a many_o have_v hope_v and_o yet_o hold_v opinion_n that_o the_o only_a remedy_n which_o remain_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o miserable_a state_n of_o thing_n be_v a_o general_a council_n which_o shall_v be_v free_o hold_v where_o the_o cause_n on_o both_o part_n may_v be_v discuss_v but_o they_o never_o abide_v themselves_o to_o be_v bring_v thereunto_o with_o grief_n they_o hear_v mention_v make_v of_o a_o council_n moreover_o lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v over_o wicked_a they_o permit_v a_o council_n after_o a_o sort_n but_o such_o a_o council_n as_o consist_v of_o they_o that_o conspire_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o see_v the_o ground_n and_o state_n of_o all_o depend_v whole_o upon_o the_o pope_n they_o will_v abide_v none_o there_o but_o such_o as_o be_v swear_v unto_o he_o 5_o tenthlie_a in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o thing_n church_n what_o and_o how_o many_o kind_n of_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o be_v necessary_a other_o be_v free_a and_o othersome_a be_v wicked_a among_o thing_n necessary_a be_v appoint_v doctrine_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o also_o holy_a and_o honest_a life_n namely_o that_o man_n shall_v behave_v themselves_o godly_a modest_o and_o justly_o towards_o god_n themselves_o and_o their_o neighbour_n all_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n belong_v unto_o discipline_n this_o be_v so_o let_v we_o consider_v how_o these_o man_n behave_v themselves_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n doctrine_n out_o of_o all_o doubt_n they_o have_v corrupt_v for_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n only_o 19_o rom._n 1._o 16._o &_o 3._o 21._o &_o 5._o 1._o gal._n 2._o 19_o as_o the_o scripture_n do_v appoint_v but_o that_o we_o be_v also_o justify_v by_o work_n they_o preach_v worship_v of_o image_n and_o the_o adore_v of_o creature_n they_o defend_v invocation_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o be_v mere_a corruption_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n they_o have_v so_o deface_v by_o add_v too_o and_o mangle_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v now_o scarce_o know_v further_o as_o to_o manner_n and_o life_n they_o have_v so_o excéedinglie_o loose_v the_o reins_n of_o discipline_n as_o they_o call_v good_a 20._o esa_n 5._o 20._o evil_a and_o evil_a good_a and_o all_o thing_n be_v take_v hand_n over_o head_n and_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n there_o be_v of_o thing_n as_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n perceive_v of_o justice_n and_o thing_n that_o be_v free_a now_o they_o suffer_v not_o to_o be_v free_a they_o have_v ordain_v a_o choice_n of_o meat_n 16._o col._n 2._o 16._o when_o as_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_v as_o testify_v the_o apostle_n none_o ought_v to_o judge_v us._n they_o observe_v day_n with_o great_a superstition_n also_o they_o suffer_v not_o fasting_n to_o be_v free_a but_o they_o will_v have_v appoint_v time_n as_o the_o year_n go_v about_o they_o have_v decree_v to_o fast_v upon_o fridaie_n and_o saturdaie_o in_o the_o time_n of_o lent_n in_o the_o vigil_n and_o imber_n day_n matrimony_n which_o among_o other_o thing_n be_v most_o free_a they_o have_v forbid_v to_o all_o the_o clergy_n also_o there_o be_v garment_n prescribe_v by_o they_o to_o be_v so_o ncecessarie_a as_o without_o they_o mass_n can_v be_v have_v they_o will_v not_o that_o leaven_a bread_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v but_o sweet_a or_o unleavened_a ceremony_n and_o rite_n they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v so_o common_a that_o all_o man_n may_v use_v they_o brief_o they_o have_v make_v thing_n that_o be_v free_a to_o be_v of_o necessity_n thing_n that_o be_v naught_o and_o corrupt_v they_o will_v not_o cut_v off_o they_o retain_v they_o obstinate_o and_o he_o that_o will_v admonish_v they_o thereof_o they_o gréevouslie_o pursue_v he_o 2._o whether_o the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n look_v before_o cap._n 1._o act._n 2._o 6_o furthermore_o they_o will_v have_v none_o to_o be_v of_o their_o fellowship_n that_o profess_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o universal_a church_n to_o be_v particular_a for_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v one_o certain_a church_n as_o be_v the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n milan_n and_o ephesus_n but_o the_o catholic_a be_v universal_a for_o it_o be_v there_o find_v wheresoever_o the_o beléever_n and_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n live_v well_o it_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o place_n &_o chair_n they_o straight_o way_n revolt_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n be_v erect_v by_o they_o for_o they_o which_o will_v not_o go_v under_o the_o yoke_n be_v by_o the_o romanistes_n expulse_v from_o the_o church_n they_o seek_v not_o that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v large_o spread_v but_o that_o they_o may_v bear_v rule_n far_o and_o wide_o paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n write_v 5_o rom._n 12._o 5_o that_o we_o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n &_o member_n every_o one_o of_o a_o other_o but_o and_o if_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v one_o in_o christ_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v enough_o to_o profess_v christ_n donatist●…_n e●…ors_n of_o the_o donatist●…_n not_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o donatist_n be_v reproove_v by_o many_o of_o the_o father_n and_o especial_o by_o augustine_n because_o they_o have_v straiten_v the_o catholic_a church_n into_o a_o small_a corner_n of_o aphrica_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o where_o else_o to_o be_v find_v but_o do_v not_o the_o papist_n the_o very_a same_o when_o as_o they_o acknowledge_v none_o for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o follow_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o their_o head_n and_o prince_n let_v they_o prove_v if_o they_o can_v that_o the_o gospel_n spring_v up_o at_o rome_n it_o can_v be_v say_v for_o it_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n aswell_o unto_o the_o greek_n as_o latin_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o by_o the_o right_n of_o antiquity_n the_o first_o of_o all_o further_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v before_o the_o same_o and_o if_o it_o can_v then_o be_v without_o it_o what_o let_v be_v there_o but_o that_o now_o also_o it_o may_v be_v without_o it_o but_o if_o so_o be_v to_o speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o logician_n the_o roman_a church_n first_o of_o all_o and_o by_o itself_o have_v be_v the_o catholic_a church_n all_o church_n by_o it_o shall_v be_v name_v and_o shall_v be_v call_v and_o become_v catholic_a through_o she_o which_o how_o false_a it_o be_v i_o have_v already_o show_v in_o that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n antioch_n and_o
this_o matter_n who_o affirm_v that_o these_o word_n belong_v to_o the_o minister_n which_o be_v speak_v particular_o unto_o peter_n and_o they_o yield_v a_o certain_a and_o plain_a reason_n why_o they_o be_v several_o speak_v unto_o peter_n cyprian_n dé_v simplicitate_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o man_n give_v the_o key_n unto_o all_o that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o respect_n unto_o unity_n and_o that_o all_o church_n disperse_v throughout_o the_o world_n although_o they_o be_v reckon_v many_o yet_o may_v be_v account_v for_o one_o and_o he_o affirm_v that_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o peter_n be_v endue_v i_o say_v in_o the_o fellowship_n of_o equal_a honour_n and_o power_n augustin_n in_o his_o 50._o homely_a upon_o john_n testify_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v speak_v by_o christ_n unto_o peter_n because_o in_o he_o be_v the_o mystery_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o say_v he_o the_o key_n be_v give_v unto_o peter_n the_o church_n have_v they_o not_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v speak_v unto_o peter_n because_o the_o church_n be_v note_v in_o he_o but_o i_o return_v to_o cyprian_a who_o in_o the_o same_o place_n de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la which_o i_o allege_v a_o little_a before_o write_v that_o there_o be_v one_o bishopric_n of_o christ_n whereof_o every_o one_o of_o the_o bishop_n whole_o hold_v a_o part_n in_o gross_a hierom_n also_o unto_o nepotianus_n say_v all_o bishop_n all_o principal_a elder_n and_o archdeacon_n and_o every_o ecclesiastical_a order_n depend_v upon_o their_o governor_n neither_o do_v he_o write_v it_o depend_v upon_o one_o ministerial_a head_n or_o upon_o the_o roman_a bishop_n the_o same_o father_n write_v unto_o euagrius_n doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o eugubium_n and_o certain_a other_o i_o wot_v not_o who_o be_v equal_a unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n both_o in_o power_n and_o merit_n 28_o over_o this_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o christ_n in_o his_o speech_n put_v no_o particle_n exclusive_a he_o say_v i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o ●9_n mat._n 16._o ●9_n but_o he_o say_v not_o to_o thou_o only_o and_o alone_o howbeit_o although_o he_o have_v speak_v after_o this_o manner_n our_o man_n may_v not_o thereby_o have_v have_v what_o they_o will_v because_o the_o particle_n exclusive_a shall_v have_v be_v understand_v to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o apostolical_a and_o judaical_a or_o heathenish_a minister_n but_o to_o avoid_v all_o ambiguity_n he_o will_v abstain_v from_o the_o exclusive_a particle_n thou_o be_v peter_n say_v he_o he_o do_v not_o then_o first_o call_v he_o 1._o he_o otherwise_o petros_n of_o petra_n a_o rock_n john_n 1._o caephas_n but_o when_o he_o call_v he_o at_o the_o beginning_n he_o will_v so_o name_v he_o foreshow_v by_o that_o name_n that_o he_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v promote_v to_o a_o sound_n and_o strong_a faith_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v thou_o by_o a_o excellent_a confession_n have_v honour_v i_o in_o call_v i_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n i_o on_o the_o otherside_n give_v this_o testimony_n unto_o thou_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o a_o firm_a and_o steadfast_a stone_n but_o to_o avoid_v all_o ambiguity_n the_o lord_n say_v not_o upon_o this_o peter_n peter_n what_o christ_n mean_v by_o petra_n or_o peter_n which_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o may_v have_v say_v see_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n &_o a_o rock_n in_o greek_a do_v signify_v all_o one_o thing_n but_o he_o say_v upon_o this_o rock_n whereby_o he_o will_v give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o beside_o peter_n there_o be_v some_o other_o foundation_n to_o be_v seek_v after_o upon_o which_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v but_o what_o foundation_n that_o be_v all_o the_o father_n do_v not_o establish_v after_o one_o sort_n augustine_n in_o the_o hundred_o &_o twentieth_o treatise_n upon_o john_n judge_v that_o rock_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v christ_n augustine_n augustine_n unto_o who_o paul_n agree_v when_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n 11._o 1._o cor._n 3._o 11._o none_o can_v lay_v any_o other_o foundation_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v already_o lay_v that_o be_v christ_n jesus_n he_o say_v also_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n and_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n 16._o 1._o cor._n 10._o 4_o esa_n 2d_o 16._o and_o esay_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o sound_n and_o precious_a stone_n in_o zion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n found_v by_o god_n 6._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 6._o whereunto_o also_o peter_n have_v respect_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n and_o second_o chapter_n so_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n we_o be_v no_o alien_n and_o stranger_n 19_o ephe._n 2._o 19_o but_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n and_o christ_n affirm_v that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o head_n corner_n stone_n whereby_o the_o wall_n of_o that_o building_n be_v join_v together_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n etc._n heb._n 10._o 1._o etc._n etc._n the_o christian_a priesthood_n be_v after_o this_o manner_n distinguish_v from_o the_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n that_o aaron_n priesthood_n may_v not_o endure_v for_o ever_o but_o therein_o the_o latter_a succéede_v the_o former_a one_o after_o a_o other_o but_o the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n abide_v in_o christ_n only_o without_o interruption_n for_o ever_o more_o by_o this_o doctrine_n we_o may_v know_v that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o must_v not_o establish_v such_o a_o popedom_n or_o priesthood_n as_o a_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v renew_v and_o have_v always_o need_n of_o new_a successor_n otherwise_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o christian_a priesthood_n but_o a_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n add_v hereunto_o that_o in_o the_o 1._o 13._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 13._o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n they_o be_v blame_v which_o will_v be_v of_o paul_n of_o apollo_n or_o of_o cephas_n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o christian_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o man_n hitherto_o of_o augustine_n opinion_n 29_o there_o be_v a_o other_o opinion_n which_o show_v the_o rock_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n cyril_n the_o rock_n which_o christ_n speak_v of_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o peter_n hilarius_n cyril_n to_o be_v the_o faith_n or_o confession_n wherewith_o peter_n confess_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n this_o exposition_n do_v hilary_n follow_v plain_o &_o in_o many_o word_n in_o his_o seven_o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la cyrill_n also_o in_o his_o dialogue_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la the_o four_o book_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n chrysost_n chrysost_n chrysostome_n be_v of_o sundry_a mind_n and_o although_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o matthew_n he_o refer_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n unto_o peter_n yet_o in_o the_o homely_a de_fw-fr pentecosta_n sive_fw-la de_fw-la adorando_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la entreat_v of_o those_o word_n infer_v they_o not_o unto_o peter_n but_o unto_o his_o faith_n or_o profession_n no_o otherwise_o do_v theophilact_n etc._n theophilact_n erasmus_n mind_n touch_v these_o word_n thou_o be_v peter_n etc._n etc._n yea_o and_o erasmus_n in_o his_o annotation_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o say_v that_o he_o woonder_v that_o the_o same_o speech_n shall_v be_v wrest_v unto_o the_o roman_a bishop_n but_o least_o perhaps_o he_o shall_v be_v count_v a_o heretic_n he_o grant_v that_o it_o agree_v with_o he_o special_o yet_o not_o with_o he_o alone_o but_o withal_o they_o that_o be_v faithful_a even_o as_o origen_n have_v excellentlie_o well_o express_v here_o i_o glad_o common_a with_o our_o adversary_n and_o request_v they_o that_o they_o will_v not_o hold_v we_o for_o heretic_n if_o we_o refer_v not_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n either_o unto_o peter_n or_o unto_o the_o pope_n we_o follow_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n which_o we_o have_v allege_v that_o which_o they_o must_v condemn_v as_o heretical_a before_o they_o condenne_v we_o as_o heretic_n undoubted_o so_o long_o as_o they_o bear_v with_o they_o they_o can_v justly_o banish_v us._n but_o of_o this_o will_v i_o admonish_v the_o reader_n that_o he_o think_v not_o the_o former_a opinion_n and_o the_o latter_a to_o be_v diverse_a but_o to_o be_v all_o one_o for_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n not_o simple_o and_o absolute_o but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o beléever_n by_o faith_n apprehend_v he_o and_o confess_v he_o church_n how_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v unto_o cyprian_a jerom_n ambrose_n and_o augustine_n
which_o sometime_o apply_v those_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o peter_n as_o though_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o he_o augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o retractation_n make_v mention_v particular_o of_o both_o exposition_n namely_o as_o touch_v christ_n and_o peter_n and_o leave_v the_o opinion_n free_a unto_o the_o reader_n although_o he_o incline_v more_o willing_o unto_o the_o former_a interpretation_n touch_v christ_n erasmus_n and_o that_o as_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o not_o unlearnedlie_o excuse_v they_o after_o this_o manner_n namely_o that_o they_o accept_v not_o of_o peter_n otherwise_o than_o as_o he_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o also_o of_o his_o own_o faith_n and_o confession_n confute_v cardinal_n poles_n opinion_n confute_v 30_o reginald_n pole_n a_o cardinal_n of_o england_n endevour_v to_o confute_v the_o latter_a exposition_n which_o have_v respect_n to_o the_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o peter_n because_o it_o appoint_v accident_n without_o a_o subject_n and_o upon_o those_o will_v have_v the_o church_n to_o be_v found_v but_o these_o thing_n belong_v rather_o unto_o shift_a sleight_n than_o unto_o sound_a argument_n we_o know_v indeed_o that_o the_o nine_o predicament_n differ_v from_o the_o predicament_n of_o substance_n but_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o those_o also_o have_v their_o proper_a nature_n and_o essence_n so_o as_o of_o they_o be_v sometime_o speak_v those_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v affirm_v of_o substance_n knowledge_n undoubted_o be_v a_o accident_n can_v be_v find_v any_o where_n but_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v certain_a &_o infallible_a whereas_o man_n notwithstanding_o be_v a_o thing_n inconstant_a feeble_a &_o deceivable_a cogitation_n in_o like_a manner_n be_v in_o man_n who_o in_o the_o like_a sort_n can_v be_v in_o all_o place_n at_o once_o what_o let_v be_v there_o then_o but_o that_o the_o truth_n faith_n and_o confession_n which_o be_v in_o peter_n may_v be_v call_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o peter_n himself_o be_v otherwise_o a_o frail_a and_o mortal_a man_n shall_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v this_o foundation_n assure_o peter_n do_v sometime_o doubt_n and_o waver_v whenas_o nevertheless_o that_o faith_n and_o truth_n which_o he_o profess_v remain_v firm_a and_o unshake_a he_o jerom._n christ_n communicate_v his_o thing_n with_o they_o that_o be_v he_o jerom_n expound_v this_o place_n say_v that_o christ_n do_v liberal_o communicate_v his_o property_n with_o his_o apostle_n and_o member_n he_o say_v on_o a_o time_n that_o he_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o very_a same_o he_o pronounce_v of_o his_o apostle_n 6._o john_n 8._o 12._o matt._n 5._o 14._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 6._o and_o whereas_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o himself_o be_v the_o stone_n he_o also_o call_v they_o stone_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o see_v he_o himself_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o absurd_a that_o he_o will_v also_o have_v his_o apostle_n after_o that_o manner_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 11_o 1._o cor._n 3._o 11_o namely_o because_o they_o be_v livelie_a and_o great_a stone_n who_o have_v cleaved_a unto_o he_o in_o the_o first_o place_n in_o the_o building_n of_o the_o church_n 5._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 5._o peter_n himself_o also_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n will_v we_o to_o be_v such_o livelie_a stone_n who_o shall_v be_v build_v in_o christ_n so_o many_o as_o be_v the_o more_o excellent_a in_o faith_n and_o do_v the_o more_o constant_o profess_v christ_n do_v the_o more_o néerelie_o cleave_v unto_o that_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 14_o apo._n 21._o 14_o in_o the_o apocalips_n the_o heavenly_a city_n be_v fit_o and_o magnificallie_o describe_v church_n a_o place_n of_o the_o apocalips_n touch_v the_o twelve_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n who_o wall_n be_v say_v to_o stand_v upon_o twelve_o foundation_n and_o there_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v write_v not_o that_o they_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o by_o their_o doctrine_n word_n and_o preach_v they_o show_v the_o same_o unto_o all_o the_o faithful_a i_o myself_o be_v sometime_o of_o the_o opinion_n that_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v what_o strength_n the_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v that_o the_o greek_a preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o cause_n i_o mean_v not_o of_o the_o principal_a but_o of_o the_o instrumental_a cause_n that_o it_o may_v be_v signify_v that_o christ_n determine_v to_o build_v the_o church_n by_o peter_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o such_o like_o who_o shall_v profess_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o confession_n which_o peter_n make_v neither_o be_v it_o dissonant_n from_o the_o hebrew_n of_o what_o strength_n the_o preposition_n aal_n be_v of_o that_o the_o particle_n or_o preposition_n aal_n which_o they_o have_v translate_v upon_o be_v nothing_o else_o than_o by_o that_o it_o may_v signify_v a_o mean_n and_o instrument_n but_o this_o interpretation_n i_o dare_v not_o so_o serious_o affirm_v because_o i_o very_o little_a favour_n my_o own_o devise_n i_o note_v beside_o that_o that_o preposition_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v join_v to_o a_o dative_a case_n be_v seldom_o use_v by_o the_o grecian_n in_o this_o signification_n wherefore_o i_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o other_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v it_o meet_v to_o be_v suffer_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n yet_o be_v their_o impudency_n so_o great_a as_o they_o not_o only_o call_v themselves_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o they_o will_v be_v call_v the_o spouse_n thereof_o whereas_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n 2_o 2._o cor._n 11._o 2_o i_o have_v betroth_v you_o to_o one_o man_n to_o present_v you_o a_o chaste_a spouse_n unto_o christ_n 29._o john_n 3._o 29._o and_o john_n baptist_n testify_v that_o he_o in_o deed_n be_v not_o the_o bridegroom_n but_o the_o bridegroom_n friend_n 31_o but_o pass_v over_o this_o place_n now_o let_v we_o turn_v to_o another_o 15._o joh._n 21._o 15._o which_o they_o oftentimes_o object_v lewdlie_a against_o us._n expound_v christ_n word_n peter_n love_v thou_o i_o etc._n etc._n expound_v we_o have_v in_o john_n that_o christ_n ask_v peter_n &_o that_o thrice_o whether_o he_o love_v he_o and_o that_o when_o he_o have_v affirm_v it_o the_o lord_n thrice_o command_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n as_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v all_o one_o thing_n to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n &_o to_o bear_v rule_n over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n why_o do_v they_o not_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v also_o other_o apostle_n send_v to_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o the_o lord_n undoubted_o christ_n say_v unto_o they_o all_o 22_o joh._n 20._o 21._o ibid._n ver_fw-la 22_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o he_o breathe_v upon_o they_o all_o 45._o luk._n 24._o 45._o he_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o they_o all_o and_o final_o he_o open_v all_o their_o mind_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n which_o as_o a_o spiritual_a food_n they_o shall_v offer_v unto_o all_o mortal_a man_n 19_o mat._n 28._o 19_o also_o he_o give_v commandment_n unto_o they_o all_o that_o they_o shall_v go_v into_o all_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n unto_o every_o creature_n 1._o verse_n 1._o yea_o and_o peter_n himself_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n and_o v._o chapter_n say_v i_o do_v exhort_v the_o elder_n who_o be_o also_o a_o fellow_n elder_n so_o he_o speak_v neither_o do_v he_o name_v himself_o a_o prince_n or_o head_n but_o equal_a to_o they_o that_o they_o feed_v the_o flock_n which_o be_v among_o you_o while_o our_o adversary_n abuse_v this_o place_n we_o shall_v reply_v upon_o they_o by_o a_o rule_n very_o much_o use_v of_o the_o lawyer_n and_o canonist_n expound_v a_o rule_n of_o the_o lawyer_n expound_v a_o benefit_n be_v give_v for_o do_v a_o duty_n which_o proposition_n if_o we_o turn_v on_o the_o contrary_a part_n we_o may_v very_o well_o prove_v that_o a_o benefit_n be_v not_o bestow_v upon_o they_o that_o do_v not_o their_o duty_n let_v they_o therefore_o cease_v to_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v pastor_n bishop_n and_o pope_n see_v they_o nothing_o at_o all_o feed_v the_o lord_n flock_n at_o this_o day_n their_o popedom_n or_o bishopric_n stand_v only_o in_o lead_n wax_v bull_n writ_n oracle_n of_o livelie_a voice_n proper_a motion_n the_o cheste_n of_o the_o breast_n indulgence_n dispensation_n and_o such_o like_a gaud_n 32_o they_o boast_v also_o
30_o 1._o cor._n 5._o 30_o through_o all_o and_o in_o all_o he_o say_v also_o that_o we_o be_v one_o body_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o bone_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o be_v most_o néerelie_o conjoin_v unto_o he_o and_o the_o gift_n which_o we_o have_v be_v derive_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n through_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n give_v for_o our_o sake_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o so_o by_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v couple_v and_o unite_v unto_o god_n and_o in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o john_n christ_n pray_v the_o father_n for_o the_o apostle_n 20._o joh._n 17._o 20._o and_o all_o that_o do_v believe_v and_o shall_v believe_v cause_o thou_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o even_o as_o i_o be_o in_o thou_o and_o thou_o be_v in_o i_o wherefore_o he_o will_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v one_o by_o communicate_v i_o mean_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o by_o the_o place_n allege_v consist_v in_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o a_o most_o near_a bond_n with_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n such_o a_o unity_n have_v not_o we_o break_v but_o we_o wish_v every_o manner_n of_o way_n that_o it_o may_v be_v maintain_v safe_a and_o sound_a much_o more_o may_v be_v bring_v for_o the_o decide_n of_o this_o controversy_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v already_o speak_v i_o think_v be_v sufficient_a unto_o godly_a mind_n to_o confirm_v and_o comfort_v themselves_o against_o the_o cavillation_n of_o the_o papist_n papist_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v of_o they_o which_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o papist_n 51_o last_o this_o remain_v that_o see_v we_o have_v depart_v from_o that_o congregation_n which_o persecute_v true_a godliness_n let_v we_o show_v that_o we_o have_v do_v the_o same_o in_o good_a earnest_n lest_o we_o shall_v seem_v only_o to_o be_v absent_a from_o they_o in_o body_n therefore_o let_v we_o with_o our_o whole_a heart_n and_o with_o all_o our_o endeavour_n embrace_v sound_a and_o true_a godliness_n and_o show_v forth_o plentiful_a and_o manifest_a fruit_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o this_o vocation_n of_o we_o let_v we_o avoid_v the_o offence_n by_o which_o the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v be_v hinder_v and_o they_o call_v back_o from_o the_o go_v forward_o in_o christ_n who_o as_o yet_o be_v somewhat_o tender_a therein_o let_v we_o rather_o labour_v to_o edify_v the_o brethren_n and_o drive_v they_o so_o far_o as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o the_o pure_a religion_n and_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v put_v our_o hand_n to_o the_o plough_n we_o must_v persevere_v unto_o the_o end_n 22._o luke_n 9_o 22._o and_o since_o we_o stand_v in_o the_o right_a way_n we_o must_v take_v very_o diligent_a heed_n of_o the_o fury_n and_o sleight_n of_o the_o devil_n let_v we_o not_o suffer_v ourselves_o by_o perverse_a opinion_n and_o erroneous_a sect_n to_o be_v lead_v away_o from_o that_o truth_n which_o we_o perceive_v by_o faith_n this_o if_o we_o shall_v do_v we_o shall_v purge_v ourselves_o both_o to_o the_o godly_a and_o to_o the_o wicked_a but_o if_o we_o behave_v ourselves_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v be_v very_o much_o hate_v of_o both_o not_o for_o the_o cause_n sake_n but_o through_o our_o own_o fault_n the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o sacrament_n and_o namely_o of_o circumcision_n the_o word_n which_o signify_v a_o sacrament_n in_o hebrew_n be_v sod_a and_o razi_n 16._o in_o rom._n 4_o ver_fw-la 11._o look_v in_o gen._n 17._o look_v epist_n 18_o unto_o the_o brethren_n of_o polonia_n verse_n 16._o the_o first_o of_o these_o word_n be_v common_a unto_o all_o secret_n and_o hide_a thing_n &_o be_v more_o in_o use_n and_o the_o other_o esaie_n use_v in_o the_o twenty-four_o chapter_n when_o he_o say_v razili_a razili_a that_o be_v a_o secret_a unto_o i_o a_o secret_a unto_o i_o daniel_n also_o in_o his_o second_o chapter_n set_v down_o the_o interpretation_n of_o a_o mystery_n use_v the_o selfsame_o word_n such_o be_v the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o sacrament_n that_o they_o contain_v thing_n hide_v know_v yet_o unto_o some_o but_o not_o unto_o all_o and_o from_o this_o etymology_n the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d differ_v not_o much_o which_o be_v derive_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v because_o we_o ought_v to_o keep_v thing_n close_o inwardlie_a after_o such_o a_o sort_n be_v the_o mystery_n of_o ceres_n eleusina_n in_o the_o country_n of_o athens_n eleusis_n the_o mystery_n of_o ceres_n of_o eleusis_n which_o be_v open_v unto_o none_o but_o those_o who_o have_v be_v first_o instruct_v and_o they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o who_o secrecy_n these_o thing_n be_v commit_v 25_o chrysost_n rom._n 11._o 25_o chrysostome_n when_o he_o interprete_v the_o xj_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o roman_n where_o paul_n say_v that_o he_o write_v a_o mystery_n of_o the_o israelit_n partly_o blind_v and_o partly_o to_o be_v restore_v say_v that_o a_o mystery_n signify_v a_o thing_n unknowen_a and_o unspeakable_a &_o which_o have_v in_o it_o much_o admiration_n and_o which_o be_v above_o our_o opinion_n the_o same_o father_n when_o he_o interprete_v the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 7._o 1._o cor._n 2._o 7._o where_o it_o be_v say_v we_o speak_v wisdom_n in_o a_o mystery_n thus_o write_v it_o shall_v be_v no_o divine_a or_o perfect_a mystery_n if_o thou_o shall_v add_v any_o thing_n of_o thyself_o add●…_n unto_o divine_a mystery_n must_v nothing_o be_v add●…_n by_o which_o word_n it_o be_v manifest_a how_o much_o they_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v which_o at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n and_o judgement_n ordain_v sacrament_n and_o from_o that_o which_o christ_n himself_o have_v ordain_v pluck_v away_o what_o they_o will_n those_o word_n of_o chrysostome_n do_v manifest_o reproove_v they_o neither_o let_v they_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v any_o thing_n relieve_v by_o say_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o mystery_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n whereunto_o he_o say_v nothing_o must_v be_v add_v nor_o take_v away_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o sacrament_n whereof_o we_o entreat_v be_v of_o no_o less_o weight_n than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n scripture_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o same_o weight_n that_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o they_o as_o augustine_n very_o apt_o say_v be_v the_o visible_a word_n of_o god_n furthermore_n chrysostome_n expound_v the_o place_n before_o allege_v say_v that_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n see_v one_o thing_n believe_v another_o thing_n behold_v with_o our_o sense_n one_o thing_n &_o understand_v in_o our_o mind_n another_o thing_n sacrament_n the_o faithful_a and_o the_o unfaithful_a be_v not_o affect_v both_o after_o one_o manner_n towards_o the_o sacrament_n whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o be_v not_o after_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o manner_n affect_v towards_o these_o mystery_n for_o a_o infidel_n when_o he_o hear_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v crucify_v think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n foolish_a and_o of_o no_o value_n but_o the_o faithful_a man_n acknowledge_v in_o that_o mystery_n the_o most_o high_a power_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n if_o a_o ethnic_a hair_n that_o christ_n be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a he_o will_v think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o fable_n but_o a_o christian_a not_o only_o beléeve_v that_o the_o same_o be_v do_v but_o also_o will_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o himself_o as_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n shall_v one_o day_n be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a afterward_o chrysostome_n come_v to_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n and_o say_v if_o a_o infidel_n see_v baptism_n he_o will_v judge_v that_o there_o be_v but_o water_n only_o but_o the_o faithful_a behold_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o the_o sense_n be_v know_v only_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o the_o beléever_n refer_v their_o mind_n to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n hereunto_o he_o appli_v a_o similitude_n of_o a_o book_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n for_o if_o a_o unlearned_a and_o rude_a man_n that_o can_v read_v a_o word_n shall_v light_v upon_o a_o book_n he_o only_o may_v behold_v and_o wonder_v at_o the_o prick_v figure_n and_o colour_n but_o the_o sense_n and_o understanding_n of_o they_o he_o can_v find_v out_o but_o he_o which_o be_v learned_a draw_v from_o thence_o either_o history_n or_o else_o other_o thing_n pleasant_a and_o worthy_a to_o be_v know_v now_o that_o we_o have_v declare_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_a word_n there_o
but_o by_o their_o own_o lust_n they_o regard_v their_o own_o affection_n and_o not_o the_o law_n of_o god_n further_n they_o invade_v kingdom_n be_v stir_v up_o by_o their_o own_o lust_n and_o drive_v by_o their_o own_o ambition_n not_o as_o they_o which_o feel_v the_o call_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o kingdom_n neither_o do_v they_o take_v authority_n upon_o they_o with_o a_o will_v to_o obey_v god_n but_o to_o satisfy_v their_o own_o ambition_n 6._o jer._n 27._o 6._o this_o be_v not_o to_o reign_v by_o god_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o promote_v to_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o be_v contrary_a wellnear_o to_o the_o whole_a scripture_n for_o god_n call_v nabuchadnezar_a his_o servant_n because_o he_o will_v use_v his_o labour_n to_o afflict_v the_o israelite_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o it_o may_v have_v be_v say_v that_o he_o reign_v not_o by_o god_n because_o he_o fight_v against_o the_o jew_n for_o his_o own_o pleasure_n sake_n and_o not_o of_o a_o zeal_n to_o fulfil_v the_o will_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o say_n of_o osea_n the_o prophet_n be_v nothing_o against_o we_o but_o that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o the_o magistrate_n be_v of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o obey_v he_o paul_n say_v let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n 1._o rom._n 13._o 1._o the_o same_o be_v write_v to_o titus_n 2._o tit._n 3._o 1._o 1._o pet._n 2._o 13._o 1._o tim._n 2._o 2._o and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o peter_n the_o 2._o chapter_n and_o paul_n to_o timothy_n add_v that_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o they_o but_o the_o papist_n and_o they_o which_o will_v be_v call_v ecclesiastical_a man_n will_v not_o give_v ear_n hereunto_o chrysost_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o the_o ordinary_a power_n rom._n 13._o 1._o ib._n ver_fw-la 2._o look_v the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n act._n 6._o chrysost_n for_o they_o cry_v that_o they_o be_v exempt_v from_o public_a and_o ordinary_a power_n whereas_o yet_o the_o apostle_n use_v no_o exception_n when_o he_o say_v let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n again_o he_o which_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o chysostome_n also_o upon_o that_o place_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n and_o moonke_n be_v comprehend_v under_o that_o law_n and_o chrysostome_n write_v these_o thing_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n whenas_o nevertheless_o he_o himself_o be_v bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o we_o have_v then_o christian_a emperor_n 7_o but_o it_o be_v a_o world_n to_o hear_v the_o argument_n which_o these_o false_a ecclesiastical_a man_n use_v in_o the_o extravagant_n de_fw-fr maioritate_fw-la &_o obedientia_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la bonifacius_n the_o eight_o who_o they_o write_v to_o have_v enter_v in_o as_o a_o fox_n reign_v like_o a_o lion_n and_o die_v like_o a_o dog_n say_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sword_n in_o the_o church_n and_o lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o speak_v it_o rash_o he_o cit_v these_o word_n out_o of_o the_o 22._o 35._o verse_n 35._o chapter_n of_o luke_n when_o i_o send_v you_o without_o bag_n or_o scrip_n do_v you_o at_o any_o time_n want_v any_o thing_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o no._n christ_n add_v but_o now_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o let_v every_o man_n take_v his_o scrip_n and_o wallet_n and_o he_o which_o have_v none_o let_v he_o sell_v his_o coat_n and_o buy_v a_o sword_n they_o say_v unto_o he_o behold_v here_o be_v two_o sword_n christ_n answer_v it_o be_v sufficient_a 6._o the_o trifle_a which_z the_o false_a ecclesiastical_a man_n make_v about_o their_o double_a sword_n look_v before_o pl._n 3_o art_n 6._o boniface_n say_v two_o sword_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o church_n namely_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n and_o the_o temporal_a wherefore_o they_o which_o say_v that_o peter_n have_v not_o a_o outward_a sword_n do_v seem_v not_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n wherein_o he_o say_v unto_o peter_n put_v up_o thy_o sword_n into_o thy_o sheath_n thy_o sword_n say_v he_o and_o not_o a_o other_o man_n for_o he_o have_v a_o sword_n of_o his_o own_o although_o he_o be_v bid_v to_o put_v it_o up_o but_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o order_n keep_v in_o these_o sword_n see_v what_o power_n so_o ever_o be_v they_o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n and_o there_o will_v be_v a_o great_a confusion_n if_o two_o sword_n be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o one_o shall_v not_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o other_o so_o then_o the_o temporal_a sword_n ought_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o spiritual_a and_o to_o make_v this_o argument_n more_o plain_a the_o church_n say_v he_o have_v two_o sword_n but_o it_o use_v not_o they_o after_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o manner_n for_o it_o exercise_v the_o spiritual_a sword_n but_o the_o temporal_a sword_n ought_v to_o be_v draw_v only_o at_o the_o beck_n &_o sufferance_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v so_o obscure_a that_o it_o may_v in_o a_o manner_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o riddle_n howbeit_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n pope_n the_o emperor_n sword_n subject_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o emperor_n ought_v to_o be_v draw_v only_o at_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o when_o he_o command_v he_o must_v strike_v and_o by_o sufferance_n that_o be_v he_o must_v go_v forward_o in_o strike_v so_o long_o as_o he_o list_v and_o will_v suffer_v it_o these_o thing_n therefore_o must_v be_v in_o order_n and_o the_o order_n be_v that_o the_o temporal_a sword_n be_v reduce_v unto_o god_n by_o the_o spiritual_a for_o as_o say_v that_o dionysius_n areopagita_n the_o suppose_a dionysius_n areopagita_n who_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o areopagite_n whereas_o he_o be_v another_o all_o inferior_a thing_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o chief_a but_o yet_o by_o a_o mean_a wherefore_o say_v he_o the_o temporal_a sword_n must_v be_v draw_v at_o the_o pope_n beck_n that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v refer_v unto_o god_n thus_o we_o see_v it_o to_o be_v do_v at_o this_o day_n for_o so_o often_o as_o the_o most_o holy_a father_n do_v hold_v up_o his_o finger_n to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o lutheran_n he_o will_v have_v the_o emperor_n forthwith_o to_o obey_v and_o if_o any_o prince_n will_v not_o with_o competent_a submission_n obey_v he_o straight_a way_n legate_n be_v send_v up_o &_o down_o that_o all_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n shall_v bend_v themselves_o to_o his_o beck_n and_o to_o vex_v and_o withstand_v he_o that_o will_v not_o obey_v he_o 8_o boniface_n add_v moreover_o prince_n the_o pope_n prefer_v himself_o above_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o he_o himself_o be_v above_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o principallitie_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v exercise_v by_o it_o we_o say_v he_o exercise_v spiritual_a thing_n and_o they_o temporal_a their_o sword_n therefore_o be_v inferior_a to_o we_o and_o they_o unto_o us._n he_o add_v also_o a_o other_o reason_n they_o pay_v unto_o we_o tenthes_o but_o tenthes_o be_v pay_v by_o the_o inferior_a unto_o the_o superior_a wherefore_o see_v king_n and_o prince_n pay_v tenthes_o they_o testify_v that_o their_o land_n and_o revenue_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o beside_o this_o he_o which_o bless_v be_v great_a than_o he_o which_o be_v bless_v but_o bishop_n consecrate_v &_o anoint_v king_n the_o gloss_n add_v that_o of_o king_n only_o the_o right_a shoulder_n be_v anoint_v but_o bishop_n have_v their_o head_n anoint_v king_n be_v anoint_v with_o oil_n but_o bishop_n with_o chresme_n so_o than_o we_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o king_n be_v inferior_a to_o bishop_n furthermore_o king_n receive_v their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n of_o bishop_n for_o who_o say_v he_o invest_v saul_n 10._o 1._o sam._n 10._o 1._o 1._o sam._n 16._o 1._o 2._o king_n 9_o 1._o reasins_z why_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o be_v judge_v or_o govern_v of_o any_o man_n mat._n 16._o 19_o jer._n 1._o 10._o and_o who_o david_n but_o samuel_n who_o anoint_v jehu_n but_o a_o prophet_n send_v by_o helizeus_fw-la the_o thing_n also_o which_o be_v exercise_v by_o bishop_n be_v great_a than_o that_o whereabout_o king_n be_v occupy_v for_o christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v in_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n this_o power_n be_v great_a than_o all_o humane_a power_n and_o god_n say_v unto_o jeremie_n i_o will_v set_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v root_v out_o &_o destroy_v scatter_v and_o plant_v therefore_o we_o be_v great_a than_o all_o the_o power_n of_o king_n
the_o apostle_n foot_n i_o confess_v even_o as_o you_o do_v that_o those_o garment_n be_v the_o devise_n of_o man_n and_o that_o of_o themselves_o they_o edify_v not_o but_o it_o will_v be_v think_v of_o some_o that_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o have_v they_o suffer_v for_o a_o time_n because_o this_o perhaps_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o these_o contention_n shall_v be_v avoid_v whereby_o great_a fruit_n and_o more_o ample_a commodity_n be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v hinder_v and_o leave_v as_o we_o see_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n shall_v straightway_o be_v turn_v from_o the_o gospel_n i_o pass_v over_o that_o they_o which_o defend_v these_o thing_n may_v pretend_v some_o honest_a and_o due_a signification_n not_o strange_a from_o the_o scripture_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v angel_n and_o messenger_n of_o god_n as_o malachi_n testify_v 1._o malac._n 3._o 1._o and_o angel_n have_v in_o a_o manner_n always_o show_v themselves_o clothe_v in_o white_a garment_n retain_v that_o not_o only_o the_o thing_n but_o the_o sign_n also_o be_v to_o be_v retain_v how_o can_v we_o deprive_v the_o church_n of_o this_o liberty_n that_o it_o may_v not_o signify_v some_o thing_n by_o her_o action_n and_o rite_n the_o same_o be_v do_v without_o place_v any_o worship_n of_o god_n therein_o modest_o and_o in_o few_o thing_n so_o as_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o burden_a with_o ceremony_n and_o that_o better_a thing_n be_v not_o let_v but_o you_o will_v say_v let_v they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v angel_n let_v they_o not_o signify_v it_o i_o hear_v what_o you_o say_v but_o the_o self_n same_o may_v have_v be_v answer_v unto_o paul_n 5_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 5_o when_o he_o decree_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n that_o the_o woman_n shall_v have_v her_o head_n cover_v and_o the_o man_n uncover_v for_o he_o only_o urge_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o signification_n for_o any_o man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n may_v have_v answer_v let_v the_o man_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o let_v the_o woman_n in_o her_o deed_n and_o life_n show_v herself_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o man_n let_v they_o not_o contend_v to_o show_v this_o by_o sign_n but_o the_o apostle_n see_v this_o also_o to_o be_v a_o profitable_a thing_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o live_v well_o but_o that_o also_o we_o shall_v by_o word_n and_o token_n be_v admonish_v of_o our_o duty_n but_o and_o if_o hereby_o there_o be_v give_v a_o occasion_n of_o error_n unto_o the_o weak_a let_v they_o be_v warn_v how_o they_o shall_v believe_v these_o indifferent_a thing_n let_v they_o be_v teach_v by_o sermon_n that_o they_o judge_v not_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n to_o consist_v herein_o but_o whether_o the_o eye_n of_o they_o that_o stand_v by_o be_v withdraw_v through_o the_o diversity_n of_o garment_n from_o the_o cogitation_n of_o weighty_a matter_n perhaps_o all_o man_n will_v not_o judge_v it_o so_o to_o be_v for_o first_o our_o adversary_n may_v answer_v that_o this_o will_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v if_o those_o garment_n which_o have_v be_v use_v be_v without_o excess_n and_o be_v very_o plain_a and_o such_o as_o have_v be_v hitherto_o use_v about_o holy_a service_n for_o use_v and_o cheapenesse_n take_v away_o admiration_n yea_o and_o perhaps_o they_o will_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o they_o be_v thorough_o move_v by_o that_o admiration_n will_v the_o more_o attentive_o think_v upon_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v earnest_a unto_o which_o end_n the_o sign_n of_o the_o sacrament_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v devise_v that_o even_o by_o the_o very_a sight_n and_o sense_n we_o may_v be_v ravish_v to_o think_v of_o divine_a thing_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o tyranny_n be_v straight_o way_n bring_v in_o if_o any_o indifferent_a thing_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v constant_o keep_v of_o many_o at_o this_o day_n we_o so_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o morning_n time_n as_o in_o the_o after_o noon_n we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o communion_n in_o the_o church_n but_o who_o will_v say_v that_o this_o be_v tyrannical_a because_o we_o do_v it_o with_o the_o like_a will_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o man_n undoubted_o it_o will_v like_v i_o best_o as_o i_o have_v always_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v do_v only_o that_o which_o christ_n do_v and_o deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n but_o yet_o if_o any_o thing_n indifferent_a be_v add_v i_o will_v not_o now_o therefore_o sharpelie_o contend_v especial_o see_v we_o perceive_v that_o they_o by_o who_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v great_o advance_v in_o england_n and_o may_v yet_o be_v advance_v more_o be_v against_o us._n i_o acknowledge_v indeed_o with_o you_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n 23._o ro._n 14._o 23._o be_v sin_n but_o yet_o that_o in_o our_o action_n we_o may_v have_v a_o quiet_a conscience_n that_o seem_v special_o to_o further_a which_o in_o the_o apostle_n be_v write_v unto_o titus_n unto_o the_o clean_a all_o thing_n be_v clean_o 44_o titus_n 1._o 15_o 1._o tim._n 44_o and_o unto_o timothy_n every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o particular_a thing_n which_o we_o use_v this_o general_o be_v enough_o to_o know_v by_o faith_n that_o thing_n indifferent_a can_v defile_v they_o which_o live_v with_o a_o pure_a &_o sincere_a mind_n and_o conscience_n these_o thing_n have_v i_o short_o abridge_v as_o touch_v the_o controversy_n which_o you_o propound_v unto_o i_o out_o of_o which_o i_o wish_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n that_o you_o may_v happy_o unwind_v yourself_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v write_v i_o pray_v you_o to_o take_v in_o good_a part_n for_o if_o i_o can_v have_v write_v either_o better_a or_o more_o plain_o perhaps_o i_o may_v more_o have_v satisfy_v your_o request_n howbeit_o because_o it_o be_v not_o give_v to_o all_o man_n to_o writ_n apt_o and_o ready_o hereof_o you_o must_v pardon_v i_o further_o you_o shall_v find_v i_o always_o ready_a to_o give_v place_n unto_o the_o truth_n if_o i_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o persuade_v neither_o be_o i_o late_o persuade_v in_o my_o mind_n of_o this_o opinion_n which_o i_o have_v now_o declare_v but_o i_o judge_v even_o from_o the_o first_o that_o i_o apply_v my_o mind_n unto_o the_o gospel_n that_o these_o diversity_n of_o garment_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v but_o yet_o think_v that_o the_o use_n of_o they_o if_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v remain_v sound_a be_v neither_o ungodlie_a nor_o pernicious_a of_o themselves_o or_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n i_o beseech_v almighty_a god_n preserve_v you_o safe_a and_o sound_o with_o all_o your_o household_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n my_o wife_n and_o i_o salute_v you_o hearty_o and_o your_o good_a wife_n fare_v you_o well_o from_o oxford_n the_o 4._o of_o november_n 1550._o as_o touch_v divorce_n i_o do_v not_o write_v unto_o you_o partly_o because_o you_o yourself_o differ_v the_o matter_n unto_o a_o other_o time_n and_o partly_o because_o i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o you_o understande_v of_o what_o mind_n i_o be_o together_o with_o the_o church_n of_o strasborough_n and_o all_o other_o brethren_n in_o christ_n to_o a_o certain_a friend_n of_o he_o into_o england_n 38._o my_o good_a friend_n i_o see_v in_o your_o letter_n you_o be_v afraid_a on_o both_o side_n for_o if_o you_o reject_v the_o ministry_n you_o seem_v to_o break_v off_o a_o occasion_n of_o well_o do_v but_o if_o you_o shall_v take_v upon_o you_o the_o function_n offer_v you_o justly_o and_o for_o good_a cause_n fear_v least_o you_o shall_v seem_v to_o agree_v unto_o those_o ordinance_n which_o not_o only_o diminish_v and_o deface_v the_o pure_a worship_v of_o god_n but_o do_v also_o corrupt_v it_o and_o maruellouslie_o make_v it_o to_o decay_n although_o that_o unto_o man_n which_o be_v not_o well_o conform_v towards_o the_o gospel_n they_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v but_o small_a weight_n and_o importance_n for_o they_o account_v all_o thing_n as_o indifferent_a crucifix_n of_o garment_n in_o the_o divine_a service_n and_o of_o the_o crucifix_n howbeit_o a_o man_n that_o be_v somewhat_o better_o instruct_v in_o religion_n see_v you_o be_v a_o messenger_n of_o christ_n a_o &_o earnest_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v apparel_v with_o garment_n at_o the_o altar_n to_o pray_v before_o the_o image_n of_o the_o crucifix_n to_o recite_v holy_a word_n and_o to_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n will_v he_o not_o
shall_v it_o be_v do_v to_o image_n 2_o 346_o b_o a_o shift_n of_o the_o adversary_n for_o the_o avouch_v of_o the_o woorship_v of_o they_o 2_o 347_o b_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n and_o of_o their_o several_a office_n 2_o 357_o b_o 558_o a_o appear_v in_o man_n body_n they_o be_v not_o man_n 1_n 117_o a_o they_o do_v eat_v not_o for_o need_n but_o to_o procure_v conversation_n and_o familiarity_n with_o man_n say_v augustin_n 1_n 118_o ab_fw-la why_o they_o be_v worship_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o holy_a man_n and_o the_o same_o not_o admit_v in_o the_o new_a 2_o 347a_n what_o manner_n of_o meat_n it_o be_v that_o they_o do_v eat_v 1_n 118b_v why_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o they_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n 1_n 111_o ab_fw-la tertullians_n judgement_n that_o they_o be_v very_a body_n 1_n 28_o b_o prove_v by_o example_n that_o they_o have_v sometime_o appear_v 1_n 27_o ab_fw-la god_n by_o their_o ministry_n govern_v natural_a thing_n 2_o ●58_n a_o they_o represent_v the_o minister_n of_o church_n 2_o 358_o a_o the_o may_v be_v picture_v &_o how_o farfoorth_o 2_o 341_o a_o how_o they_o do_v assume_v body_n 2_o 604_o b_o they_o be_v not_o predestinate_a 3_o 8_o b_o define_v out_o of_o they_o our_o of_o augustine_n 1_n 113_o a_o they_o do_v service_n unto_o man_n and_o of_o their_o government_n 2_o 249_o b_o order_n of_o they_o and_o their_o several_a office_n 1_n 100l_n b_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n worthy_a to_o be_v note_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n very_o few_o thing_n be_v mention_v of_o they_o 1_o 121a_o how_o they_o and_o spirit_n do_v eat_v which_o prove_v they_o to_o have_v body_n consist_v of_o vital_a payte_n 1_n 88_o a_o they_o can_v call_v thing_n back_o from_o the_o memory_n to_o the_o sense_n 1_n 89_o a_o whether_o tear_n be_v beseem_v for_o they_o 3_o 284_o a_o while_o they_o appear_v and_o seem_v to_o be_v man_n and_o be_v not_o they_o do_v not_o lie_v 1_n 113_o b_o whether_o we_o ought_v to_o offer_v prayer_n unto_o they_o 3_o 284_o a_o 308_o b_o proof_n that_o there_o be_v angel_n 3_o 383_o a_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o enoch_n be_v a_o legate_n unto_o they_o 3_o 148_o b_o 149_o a_o why_o they_o be_v call_v spirit_n 1_n 103_o a_o the_o heaven_n turn_v about_o by_o they_o 1_n 111a_o b_o bernard_n and_o the_o schoolmen_n opinion_n that_o they_o have_v body_n 1_n 113_o a_o whether_o they_o be_v body_n or_o but_o mere_a fantasy_n 1_n 87_o b_o 88_o a_o ¶_o look_n spirit_n archangel_n between_o archangel_n and_o angel_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n say_v augustine_n 1_n 118b_a anger_n aristotle_n opinion_n of_o anger_n and_o how_o he_o define_v it_o 1_n 109_o b_o how_o the_o power_n thereof_o do_v resist_v the_o desire_a part_n 2_o 410_o a_o it_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o confirmelie_o 2_o 529_o b_o it_o be_v no_o simple_a but_o a_o compound_a afteer_n 2_o 406_o a_o it_o be_v a_o wherstone_n to_o fortitude_n 2_o 408_o a_o 3_o 296_o b_o it_o be_v the_o root_n of_o murder_n 2_o 517_o a_o whether_o the_o power_n of_o desire_n and_o of_o it_o be_v all_o one_o 2_o 409_o b_o 410_o a_o how_o contrary_a it_o be_v to_o desire_v 2_o 4●0_n a_o the_o philosopher_n say_v it_o make_v the_o action_n of_o man_n not_o voluntary_a 2_o 289_o b_o a_o definition_n thereof_o and_o that_o to_o achilles_n it_o be_v like_o honey_n melt_v under_o his_o tongue_n 2_o 290_o b_o thing_n do_v therein_o do_v not_o excuse_v the_o doer_n 2_o 292_o b_o the_o scripture_n commend_v it_o in_o who_o and_o in_o what_o case_n 2_o 293_o b_o it_o do_v service_n unto_o fortitude_n 3_o 272_o a_o it_o have_v sorrow_n and_o pleasure_n join_v with_o it_o 3_o ●46_n a_o it_o come_v near_a unto_o reason_n than_o desire_n do_v 2_o 410_o a_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o choice_n say_v aristotle_n and_o why_o 2_o 295_o b_o in_o what_o case_n and_o against_o who_o aristotle_n admit_v it_o in_o man_n 2_o 290_o b_o what_o heraclitus_n plato_n and_o other_o say_v of_o it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o subduable_a 2_o 289_o b_o no_o refuge_n against_o god_n anger_n 4_o 295_o b_o 296_o a_o ¶_o look_v affect_v angry_a why_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o god_n when_o he_o do_v revenge_n be_v angry_a 1_n 207_o a_o how_o we_o must_v understand_v god_n to_o be_v angry_a and_o to_o repent_v 1_n 109_o a_o anoint_v why_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v anoint_v 2_o 606_o b_o some_z called_z so_o who_o receive_v not_o the_o outward_a unction_n 4_o 14_o ab_fw-la anoint_v the_o sign_n of_o outward_a anoint_v 4_o 14a_o under_o what_o pretence_n it_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n 4_o 15b_o to_o what_o end_n it_o serve_v 2_o 577_o b_o it_o have_v not_o be_v long_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n 4_o 14_o b_o 15_o a.b_fw-mi the_o original_a thereof_o about_o prince_n 4_o 236_o b_o what_o be_v signify_v thereby_o be_v do_v to_o the_o bishops_n head_n 4_o ●5_n a_o why_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n 2_o 605_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v right_o transfer_v unto_o christian_a prince_n 4_o 14_o b_o 15_o a.b_fw-mi whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o be_v observe_v still_o 2_o 606a_n 6._o the_o twice_o anoint_v of_o all_o christian_n 4_o 15_o a_o of_o the_o papistical_a and_o superstitious_a rite_n thereof_o 2_o ●06_n a_o what_o the_o word_n signify_v 4_o 4_o b_o or_o the_o sick_a and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o sacrament_n 3_o 211_o a_o of_o man_n ready_a to_o die_v 4_o 15_o b_o the_o carcase_n of_o dead_a 3_o 244_o a_o interpret_v to_o be_v a_o abundance_n of_o the_o spirit_n 2_o 605_o b_o 606a_o reckon_v among_o tradition_n 4._o 99_o b_o ¶_o look_v oil_n and_o unction_n antichrist_n of_o antichrist_n prophesy_v by_o daniel_n 3_o 351_o b_o the_o pope_n prove_v to_o be_v the_o same_o 4_o 36_o b_o in_o god_n temple_n 4_o 92_o a_o of_o the_o miracle_n do_v by_o he_o and_o that_o they_o be_v méerely_n 1_n 65_o a_o antiquity_n no_o antiquity_n can_v prescribe_v against_o god_n word_n 3_o 244_o a_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o how_o the_o papist_n and_o protestant_n dissent_v about_o the_o same_o 1_n 99a_o ap._n apostle_n the_o apostle_n give_v more_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n than_o we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n 1_n 52_o b_o they_o be_v to_o the_o bishop_n as_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o the_o high_a priest_n 4_o 4a_o both_o christ_n and_o they_o may_v be_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 83_o b_o 84_o a_o difference_n between_o their_o gospel_n and_o the_o papist_n 4_o 87a_o they_o live_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o godly_a 4_o 29b_n forge_v canon_n ascribe_v to_o they_o 4_o 55_o ab_fw-la 56_o a_o whether_o they_o be_v bishop_n any_o where_o 4_o 79a_o to_o what_o end_n they_o be_v choose_v 4_o 3_o b_o whether_o peter_n be_v chief_a of_o they_o 4_o 80_o a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o bishop_n 4_o 3_o b_o 4_o a_o they_o be_v not_o always_o able_a by_o their_o authority_n to_o cast_v our_o devil_n 4_o 130_o a_o their_o diligence_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 4_o 5b_n in_o their_o time_n the_o church_n have_v not_o two_o sword_n 4_o 234_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v priest_n 4_o 212_o b_o by_o what_o instrument_n they_o use_v outward_a punishment_n 4_o 233_o a_o apostleship_n the_o office_n of_o apostleship_n be_v but_o temporal_a 4_o 78_o b_o a_o difference_n between_o the_o apostleship_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o apostleship_n of_o paul_n 4_o 79_o b_o apparel_n of_o the_o costly_a and_o sumptuous_a apparel_n of_o woman_n 2_o 507_o ab_fw-la whether_o apparel_n be_v any_o impeachment_n to_o the_o ministry_n 4_o 16_o b_o a_o fond_a imitation_n of_o elias_n and_o john_n baptist_n in_o apparel_n 1_n 20b_v touch_v apparel_n read_v diverse_a point_n page_n 506_o b_o 507_o a_o ¶_o look_n garment_n appeal_v to_o who_o the_o liberty_n of_o appeal_v be_v deny_v by_o the_o civil_a law_n 2_o 438_o b_o paul_n appeal_v from_o the_o luietenant_n of_o jury_n to_o cesar_n 4_o 276_o a_o appeal_v of_o appeal_v make_v to_o the_o roman_a sea_n by_o inferior_a bishop_n and_o what_o be_v thereby_o prove_v 4_o 39_o 40._o from_o counsel_n and_o father_n to_o the_o scripture_n 4_o 47_o a_o from_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o emperor_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n 4_o 244_o b_o none_o from_o scripture_n to_o the_o father_n admit_v 4_o 48_o b_o 49_o ab_fw-la appear_v god_n appear_v unto_o man_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o stranger_n deny_v by_o plato_n and_o what_o the_o scripture_n say_v of_o the_o same_o 1_n 200_o a_o of_o the_o appear_v of_o samuel_n when_o he_o be_v dead_a read_v the_o judgement_n
word_n and_o the_o spirit_n 4_o 49_o b_o whether_o the_o be_v visible_a 2_o 630b_n 4_o 92_o ab_fw-la she_o consist_v of_o good_a &_o bad_a 4_o 92_o a_o whether_o a_o strange_a tongue_n be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o same_o 3_o 309_o b_o 310._o 311._o the_o pope_n oppress_v it_o 4_o 93_o b_o 94_o a_o the_o papist_n and_o we_o define_v to_o diverse_o 4_o 92_o a_o she_o have_v not_o now_o the_o gift_n of_o try_v of_o spirit_n 4_o 59_o a_o how_o god_n work_v together_o with_o the_o judgement_n thereof_o 4_o 60_o a_o of_o what_o manner_n of_o government_n she_o be_v 4_o 60_o b_o why_o she_o be_v call_v catholic_a 2_o 630_o b_o 631_o a_o to_o what_o end_v she_o have_v respect_n 3_o 78_o b_o she_o stand_v firm_a and_o fast_o 2_o 631_o b_o what_o kind_n of_o body_n she_o be_v 4_o 91_o b_o 92_o a_o 69b_n dissension_n therein_o be_v no_o ●ist_v proof_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a 4_o 2_o b_o 95_o b_o press_v with_o infinite_a burden_n 3_o 172a_o whether_o her_o authority_n excel_v the_o scripture_n 4_o 74_o a_o 4_o 71_o b_o 72_o a_o 1_o 42_o a_o 3_o 59_o a_o 1_o 43_o b_o 4_o 47_o ab_fw-la 48a_fw-la 54_o ab_fw-la 72_o b_o we_o much_o more_o unhappy_a than_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n 4_o 94_o a_o augustine_n church_n or_o temple_n have_v no_o image_n in_o it_o 2_o 352_o a_o what_o nation_n uncircumcised_a be_v perpetuallie_o and_o what_o nation_n but_o for_o a_o time_n exclude_v from_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n 2_o 443_o a_o whether_o multitude_n be_v any_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n 4_o 93_o a_o where_o she_o be_v before_o reformation_n 4_o 91_o b_o diverse_a function_n of_o the_o same_o 4_o 4._o 5._o 6._o 8._o the_o three_o society_n thereof_o 4_o 17a_o 1_o 42_o ab_fw-la whether_o woman_n may_v teach_v open_o therein_o 4_o 7_o ab_fw-la 8_o a_o whether_o she_o have_v power_n to_o make_v law_n 3_o 172_o a_o 4_o 41_o b_o 42_o a_o why_o the_o public_a ministery_n thereof_o be_v call_v free_a gift_n 4_o 8_o b_o whether_o abuse_v therein_o must_v be_v bear_v withal_o 3_o 164_o ab_fw-la of_o the_o unity_n whereby_o christ_n and_o she_o be_v couple_v 4_o 144._o three_o kind_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o same_o 4_o 70_o a_o there_o argument_n that_o confound_v calling_n therein_o 4_o 11a_o b_o why_o that_o of_o jerusalem_n be_v not_o prefer_v to_o the_o primasie_n 4_o 71_o ab_fw-la understand_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 3_o 392_o a_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v at_o the_o dedication_n thereof_o 4_o 66_o a_o govern_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o 63●_n ab_fw-la whether_o we_o must_v dissemble_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 32●_n b_o the_o state_n thereof_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n 4_o 50a_n comfort_n for_o her_o be_v afflict_v ●_o 351_o b_o 352_o a_o universal_a can_v be_v rule_v by_o one_o man_n 4_o 37_o b_o 36_o a_o primitive_a have_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v 〈…〉_o 3_o 23b_n mark_v whereby_o to_o know_v 〈…〉_o 6._o how_o long_o the_o gift_n of_o heal_a etc._n etc._n be_v therein_o 4_o 13●_n b_o two_o famous_a witness_n of_o the_o same_o in_o the_o last_o age_n 3_o 382_o b_o infant_n belong_v thereto_o 4_o 120_o b_o 114b_fw-la 115_o a_o what_o her_o key_n be_v 4_o 108a_n 3_o 218_o a_o 116_o b_o 2_o 636_o a_o 4_o 237_o a_o whether_o she_o may_v err_v 4_o 72_o b_o 73_o ab_fw-la 207_o b_o false_a note_n of_o discern_v the_o same_o 4_o 93_o ab_fw-la the_o state_n thereof_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n prophessed_a 3_o 351_o b_o 352_o a_o a_o mean_a to_o restore_v she_o to_o her_o first_o institution_n 4_o 55_o a_o a_o pprophecy_n thereof_o 3_o 305b_n she_o have_v her_o rest_a place_n of_o receipt_n 2_o 429_o b_o how_o she_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o truth_n 4_o 54_o a_o 1_o 40_o a_o why_o the_o pope_n must_v obey_v she_o 4_o 40_o b_o latter_a than_o the_o word_n 4_o 72_o b_o at_o the_o beginning_n among_o the_o jew_n 2_o 430_o b_o how_o she_o oftentimes_o play_v the_o harlot_n 2_o 496_o a_o what_o it_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n 2_o 447_o ab_fw-la the_o rich_a ornament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o mentz_n 4_o 66_o b_o the_o church_n have_v no_o dowry_n to_o offer_v unto_o christ_n 2_o 456_o b_o she_o disceru_v the_o true_a scripture_n from_o not_o canonical_a ●_o ●2_n b_o which_o be_v catholic_a and_o which_o not_o 4_o 70_o b_o 71_o a_o whether_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n belong_v to_o she_o 4_o 74_o b_o 86b_fw-la 87._o 88_o 89_o unjust_o slander_v with_o trouble_n &_o sedition_n 4_o 319._o 320_o how_o christ_n remain_v with_o she_o though_o he_o be_v ascend_v ●_o 39_o b_o 40_o a_o in_o what_o state_n she_o be_v before_o christ_n match_v with_o she_o two_o 610_o b_o the_o outward_a government_n thereof_o alter_v not_o her_o form_n 1_n 99_o b_o whether_o we_o or_o the_o papist_n have_v break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o 4_o 96a_v one_o nilus_n a_o bishop_n counsel_v he_o that_o build_v a_o church_n to_o beautify_v it_o with_o picture_n &_o image_n 2_o 352_o a_o how_o god_n maintain_v she_o against_o wicked_a tyrant_n 3_o 285_o b_o a_o unméete_a spouse_n of_o christ_n 2_o 610b_n 3_o 92a_o her_o great_a authority_n two_o 634._o 635._o 636._o remission_n of_o sin_n no_o where_o to_o be_v hope_v for_o but_o there_o two_o 634_o b_o whether_o the_o whole_a church_n shall_v at_o any_o time_n fail_v 3_o 64_o a_o of_o the_o spiritual_a communion_n thereof_o 2_o 631_o b_o she_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v the_o pope_n 4_o 237_o b_o 238a_o her_o duty_n be_v to_o preach_v and_o publish_v the_o word_n 1_n 42_o b_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n she_o have_v not_o two_o sword_n 4_o 234_o b_o of_o a_o church_n plant_v and_o not_o yet_o plant_v the_o consideration_n be_v diverse_a 4_o 11_o b_o why_o god_n will_v not_o govern_v his_o church_n without_o minister_n 4_o 23_o b_o whether_o that_o of_o corinth_n be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n 4_o 2_o a_o her_o liberty_n be_v to_o be_v redeem_v 4_o 33_o a_o whether_o peter_n confession_n may_v be_v call_v the_o foundation_n thereof_o 4_o 83_o b_o of_o comeliness_n &_o order_n therein_o 4_o 65ab_n how_o she_o be_v rule_v and_o provide_v for_o 4_o 40_o a_o that_o therein_o shall_v be_v ordinary_a calling_n 4_o 10_o b_o 11_o a_o she_o will_v be_v a_o monster_n if_o it_o have_v two_o head_n 4_o 37_o b_o 38_o a_o she_o use_v a_o ethnic_n magistrate_n 4_o 228_o b_o how_o to_o know_v that_o she_o err_v not_o 3_o 59_o a_o whether_o she_o be_v a_o long_a time_n cast_v into_o error_n by_o god_n 4_o 187a_o she_o have_v borrow_v certain_a word_n of_o the_o hebrew_n 4_o 215_o a_o what_o we_o must_v do_v if_o the_o magistrate_n be_v ungodly_a 4_o 38b_n of_o her_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n 3_o 78._o 79_o the_o care_n of_o she_o belong_v to_o prince_n 4_o 247b_n 248_o a_o in_o what_o thing_n she_o have_v authority_n &_o in_o what_o not_o 3_o 63_o a_o two_o great_a light_n feign_a in_o the_o same_o 4_o 246_o b_o of_o certain_a thing_n which_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v command_v and_o for_o how_o long_o 1_n 9_o b_o 10a_o who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o who_o be_v not_o 2_o 632a_o b_o in_o what_o thing_n she_o have_v not_o liberty_n 3_o 310_o b_o the_o church_n of_o the_o hebrews_n when_o good_a and_o when_o bad_a 4_o 89_o b_o 90a_o whether_o the_o consent_v of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v expect_v in_o reform_v of_o religion_n 4_o 242_o ab_fw-la whether_o christ_n institute_v one_o head_n in_o the_o same_o 4_o 37_o a_o what_o be_v the_o root_n thereof_o 2_o 629_o b_o 630_o a_o what_o be_v her_o weapon_n 2_o 632_o a_o many_o abuse_v creep_v thereinto_o in_o bede_n time_n 4_o 2●6_n b_o how_o she_o preserve_v the_o holy_a scripture_n 4_o 74_o a_o 1_n 42_o ab_fw-la 43_o a_o whether_o therein_o may_v be_v a_o outward_a head_n to_o govern_v minister_n 4_o 36a_o what_o government_n christ_n institute_v in_o the_o same_o 4_o 36_o b_o what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v when_o the_o great_a part_n thereof_o be_v infect_v with_o one_o vice_n 4_o 62_o a_o how_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v hear_v be_v to_o be_v mean_v 4_o 75_o ab_fw-la a_o place_n of_o the_o apocalyps_n touch_v the_o twelve_o foundation_n thereof_o 4_o 84a_v the_o old_a jewish_a church_n err_v and_o how_o 4_o 73_o ab_fw-la her_o state_n at_o christ_n first_o come_v 4_o 187_o a_o the_o same_o show_v by_o comparison_n 4_o 290_o b_o 291a_o whether_o she_o have_v two_o sword_n that_o be_v two_o distinct_a power_n
strength_n it_o be_v lawful_a 4_o 309_o b_o what_o that_o of_o david_n with_o goliath_n teach_v us._n 3_o 284_o b_o whereupon_o it_o be_v undertake_v and_o fight_v 4_o 308_o b_o answer_v to_o the_o argument_n bring_v for_o the_o admit_v thereof_o 4_o 311_o ab_fw-la not_o lawful_a for_o try_v of_o suit_n in_o law_n 4_o 309_o a_o whether_o it_o may_v be_v make_v for_o the_o avoid_v of_o discredit_n and_o shame_n 4_o 310_o a_o a_o just_a and_o necessary_a combat_n 4_o 311_o b_o comeliness_n of_o the_o comeliness_n require_v in_o god_n service_n 4_o 65_o b_o commandment_n which_o commandment_n be_v the_o first_o and_o what_o it_o offer_v us._n two_o 553b_v that_o against_o lust_n not_o right_o divide_v into_o twain_o 2_o 553_o a_o why_o that_o love_a god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n be_v give_v since_o it_o can_v be_v perform_v in_o this_o life_n 3_o 54_o b_o 55_o a_o how_o it_o be_v mean_v that_o he_o which_o break_v one_o break_v all_o 2_o 322_o b_o 323_o a_o 555_o a_o commandment_n the_o commandment_n of_o god_n &_o aristotle_n predicament_n compare_v 2_o 553a_n 427_o a_o whether_o we_o can_v perform_v they_o in_o this_o life_n 2_o 562_o ab_fw-la 566_o ab_fw-la how_o they_o do_v take_v away_o one_o another_o 4_o 13_o b_o how_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v easy_a to_o keep_v 2_o 569_o a_o how_o god_n give_v we_o to_o walk_v in_o they_o 2_o 568_o b_o to_o obey_v they_o be_v the_o great_a liberty_n 2_o 435_o a_o in_o which_o two_n the_o very_a soul_n of_o the_o law_n consist_v 2_o 552_o a_o 307_o a_o distinguish_v 2_o 551_o b_o 4_o 208_o a_o by_o what_o kind_n of_o nature_n they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v just_a 2_o 475_o b_o they_o be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n before_o the_o law_n though_o obscure_a &_o dark_a 2_o 449a_o which_o command_n &_o forbid_v and_o to_o what_o intent_n they_o so_o do_v 2_o 306_o b_o 307_o a_o what_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v of_o we_o in_o two_o the_o one_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o other_o 2_o 304_o b_o 305_o a_o they_o forbid_v we_o to_o keep_v company_n with_o infidel_n 4_o 86_o b_o whether_o figurative_a speech_n be_v a_o hurt_n unto_o they_o 4_o 189a_o contrive_v into_o two_o principal_a point_n 4_o 204_o ab_fw-la some_o affirmative_a &_o some_o negative_a 4_o 261b_n a_o compare_v of_o they_o together_o &_o which_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v 4_o 261_o a_o who_o commit_v sin_n in_o observe_v of_o they_o 3_o 117_o b_o when_o they_o be_v obey_v 1_n 143_o ab_fw-la the_o sum_n of_o the_o law_n set_v forth_o in_o they_o and_o of_o luther_n exposition_n 2_o 304_o a_o they_o which_o can_v be_v perform_v be_v not_o give_v in_o vain_a 2_o 552_o b_o 3_o 228_o b_o the_o form_n of_o their_o doctrine_n 2_o 517_o a_o we_o must_v not_o for_o any_o man_n example_n break_v they_o 4_o 62_o b_o the_o figure_n synecdoche_n use_v in_o they_o all_o 2_o 552_o b_o 553_o a_o a_o distinction_n of_o god_n will_n what_o respect_v it_o have_v towards_o they_o and_o towards_o man_n 1_n 191_o b_o 192_o a_o how_o man_n tradition_n do_v violate_v they_o 3_o 171_o b_o bernard_n word_n that_o god_n can_v undo_v some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o second_o table_n but_o not_o of_o the_o first_o and_o how_o that_o be_v prove_v 1_n 190_o b_o the_o feign_a devise_n touch_v counsel_n &_o commandment_n 3_o 231_o b_o 2_o 403_o a_o 4_o 278_o b_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n compare_v to_o hay_n 3_o 240_o a_o ¶_o look_v law_n &_o precept_n come_n two_o come_n of_o christ_n 2_o 597b_n 599_o b_o 600_o a_o 3_o 358_o ab_fw-la 383_o ab_fw-la ¶_o look_v christ_n common_n that_o all_o thing_n among_o christian_n shall_v be_v common_a a_o heresy_n anabaptisticall_a 1_n 519_o a_o ¶_o look_v heresy_n commonweal_n what_o commonweal_n be_v well_o order_v 4_o 163_o b_o what_o be_v the_o sinew_n thereof_o 4_o 239b_n the_o manifold_a form_n of_o the_o same_o 4_o 226_o b_o whereto_o the_o alteration_n thereof_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v 4_o 227_o b_o 228_o a_o the_o consideration_n thereof_o and_o of_o the_o church_n be_v diverse_a 4_o 36_o a_o who_o be_v head_n of_o the_o same_o 4_o 35_o b_o by_o who_o david_n rule_v the_o commonweal_n 4_o 247_o b_o what_o form_n of_o a_o commonweal_n the_o jew_n have_v 4_o 226b_n 227_o a_o the_o manner_n of_o government_n in_o the_o roman_a commonweal_n 4_o 60_o b_o right_o honourable_a 4_o 330b_n when_o in_o best_a estate_n 4_o 61_o a_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n thereof_o 4_o 30_o b_o 26_o a_o commonweal_n which_o be_v the_o pernicious_a kind_n of_o commonweal_n 4_o 60_o b_o whether_o commonweal_n be_v destroy_v by_o the_o gospel_n 4_o 26_o ab_fw-la communication_n what_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o pleasant_a communication_n two_o 528a_o what_o kind_a 〈◊〉_d ●…wfull_a and_o unlawful_a 2_o 550_o b_o communion_n whether_o christ_n minister_v the_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n to_o his_o disciple_n 4_o 213_o a.b_fw-mi they_o that_o receive_v the_o same_o be_v more_o join_v unto_o christ_n than_o be_v the_o sign_n 4_o 180a_o against_o those_o that_o stand_v by_o and_o communicate_v not_o 4_o 176_o b_o reasins_z for_o proof_n thereof_o in_o one_o kind_n only_o 4_o 204._o 205._o 1_n 97_o ab_fw-la 261_o b_o of_o our_o incorporation_n into_o christ_n thereby_o 4_o 196_o b_o 197_o a_o the_o frequent_v of_o the_o see_v hinder_v by_o transubstantiation_n 4_o 158_o b_o then_o ●a_o communicantes_fw-la tent_n away_o by_o the_o deacon_n from_o it_o 4_o 217_o a_o the_o commodity_n come_v thereby_o 4_o 194_o b_o of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o same_o 4_o 196_o a_o minister_v every_o day_n in_o rome_n 3_o 193a_o of_o stand_v sit_v or_o kneel_v thereat_o 2_o 324_o b_o against_o the_o private_a minister_a or_o receive_v of_o the_o same_o 4_o 178_o b_o 179_o a_o a_o answer_n to_o eusebius_n his_o example_n under_o one_o kind_n 1_n 98_o ab_fw-la cause_n why_o we_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o the_o papist_n 4_o 86_o b_o 87._o 88_o 89a_o communion_n of_o the_o laity_n &_o why_o so_o call_v 4_o 213_o a_o of_o the_o church_n but_o spiritual_a 2_o 631_o b_o of_o saint_n 2_o 630_o a_o distinguish_v 4_o 58_o b_o ¶_o look_v eucharist_n sacrament_n &_o supper_n compassion_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v touch_v with_o compassion_n even_o of_o the_o wicked_a 2_o 405ab_n ¶_o look_v charity_n love_n mercie_n &_o pitie_n compulsion_n certain_a thing_n whereunto_o a_o man_n must_v not_o yield_v by_o compulsion_n 2_o 284_o b_o none_o infer_v to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n 3_o 47_o a_o 2_o 257_o a_o of_o a_o kind_n thereof_o that_o be_v voluntary_a &_o deceitful_a 1_n 91_o a_o a_o kind_n of_o action_n do_v thereby_o &_o yet_o voluntary_a 2_o 323_o a_o of_o a_o necessity_n of_o sin_v which_o have_v no_o compulsion_n join_v therewith_o 2_o 256_o b_o compulsion_n of_o heretic_n to_o divine_a service_n &_o sacrament_n and_o what_o augustine_n think_v thereof_o 2_o 325_o ab_fw-la concomitancie_n of_o concomitancie_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n 4_o 202_o b_o a_o papistical_a devise_n 4_o 208_o b_o 209_o a_o concord_n mean_v to_o persuade_v man_n to_o mutual_a love_n &_o concord_n 4_o 143._o ¶_o look_v charity_n &_o love._n concubine_n two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v in_o the_o have_v of_o concubine_n 2_o 419_o a_o whether_o the_o roman_a law_n allow_v of_o they_o 2_o 419_o b_o what_o they_o decree_v concern_v they_o and_o their_o child_n 2_o 419_o a_o define_v 2._o 419_o a_o concubine_n discern_v from_o wife_n 2_o 419_o a_o in_o what_o respect_n the_o decree_n do_v grant_v &_o permit_v they_o 2_o 420_o a_o what_o we_o have_v to_o understand_v and_o note_v by_o they_o which_o the_o father_n have_v 2_o 419_o b_o the_o have_v of_o they_o be_v matrimony_n before_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n two_o 420_o a_o concupiscence_n that_o concupiscence_n remain_v after_o baptism_n be_v sin_n 2_o 222_o a_o how_o we_o be_v tempt_v thereby_o 1_n 211b_v a_o cavil_v about_o it_o to_o be_v sin_n before_o baptism_n or_o after_o baptism_n 2_o 221_o b_o 222_o a_o consider_v of_o according_a to_o three_o degree_n 2_o 371_o a_o the_o cause_n why_o augustine_n call_v original_a sin_n concupiscence_n 2_o 222_o a_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v round_o therein_o prove_v against_o pighius_fw-la 2_o 220_o b_o how_o after_o baptism_n it_o be_v sin_n and_o not_o sin_n 2_o 222_o a_o unto_o what_o kind_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v refer_v 2_o 272_o a_o against_o the_o schoolman_n that_o say_v it_o be_v good_a the_o same_o prove_v evil_a 2_o 227_o a_o what_o concupiscence_n it_o be_v that_o we_o have_v by_o generation_n 2_o 219_o b_o it_o
must_v be_v use_v 4_o 61_o b_o 62_o a_o whether_o it_o do_v separate_v we_o from_o god_n 4_o 58_o b_o how_o it_o be_v not_o preindiciall_a to_o innocent_n 4_o 64_o b_o in_o what_o case_n it_o be_v to_o be_v use_v 2_o 634_o a_o for_o light_n cause_v not_o allow_v 4_o 64_o a_o execute_v on_o such_o as_o marry_v with_o infidel_n 2_o 444_o b_o what_o kind_n have_v be_v use_v in_o former_a time_n against_o idolater_n 2_o 488_o b_o the_o force_n virtue_n and_o use_v thereof_o 2_o 635_o b_o 636_o a_o that_o &_o deprivation_n if_o a_o clergy_n man_n shall_v swear_v 2_o 372a_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o banishment_n 2_o 275_o a_o of_o prince_n by_o bishop_n 4_o 231b_n of_o martion_n prosequit_v by_o his_o own_o father_n and_o why_o 2_o 378_o a_o excuse_v the_o excuse_n by_o ignorance_n of_o god_n disallow_v 1_n 14_o b_o execution_n cause_n of_o delay_v or_o prolong_v of_o execution_n 4_o 257_o b_o execution_n of_o offender_n do_v not_o violate_v charity_n 4_o 279_o b_o executioners_z the_o ancient_a jew_n have_v no_o executioner_n 4_o 264_o a_o why_o they_o have_v common_o a_o ill_a report_n 4_o 264b_v 265_o ab_fw-la call_v lictores_fw-la and_o why_o 4_o 294_o ab_fw-la exercise_n what_o earnest_a exercise_n be_v able_a to_o do_v 1_n 57_o a_o 56_o b_o the_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o custom_n 1_n 154_o a_o exercise_n what_o exercise_n christian_n shall_v use_v for_o their_o recreation_n and_o pleasure_n 2_o 528_o a_o exile_n the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n exile_n 4_o 270_o a_o ¶_o look_v banishment_n exorcism_n what_o exorcism_n be_v 4_o 128_o b_o 129_o a_o add_v to_o baptism_n 4_o 128_o b_o the_o beginning_z thereof_o 4_o 131_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v to_o be_v join_v therewith_o 4_o 132_o b_o in_o ancient_a time_n there_o be_v none_o 4_o 31_o a_o of_o evil_a spirit_n take_v away_o 4_o 132_o b_o unto_o what_o time_n the_o original_n thereof_o may_v be_v refer_v 4._o 129_o a_o whether_o david_n use_v it_o when_o he_o play_v before_o saul_n with_o his_o harp_n 4_o 129_o a_o ¶_o look_n conjuration_n exorcism_n no_o exorcism_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o drive_v out_o of_o devil_n 4_o 129_o a_o reason_n for_o proof_n and_o disproof_n of_o they_o about_o baptism_n 4_o 133_o ab_fw-la 134_o ab_fw-la 137_o ab_fw-la 138_o a_o whether_o solomon_n make_v charm_n and_o exorcism_n 4_o 129_o ab_fw-la exorcist_n exorcist_n among_o the_o hebrew_n and_o when_o they_o begin_v 4_o 129_o ab_fw-la whether_o they_o be_v still_o to_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n 4_o 131_o b_o 132_o a_o christ_n the_o head_n and_o chief_a of_o new_a exorcist_n 4_o 130_o a_o experience_n what_o experience_n be_v require_v of_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v meet_a hearer_n of_o doctrine_n 1_n 54_o a_o ey_fw-mi eye_n if_o thy_o eye_n offend_v thou_o etc._n etc._n expound_v 4_o 88_o ab_fw-la the_o eye_n lead_v to_o lust_n 2_o 481._o it_o can_v attain_v to_o god_n essence_n 3_o 394_o b_o 1_n 25_o a_o gregory_n opinion_n of_o abuse_v the_o same_o 1_n 481_o b_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o a_o man_n distinction_n 2_o 481_o ab_fw-la fa._n fable_n a_o fable_n define_v and_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o they_o 2_o 55●_n a_o their_o use_n and_o of_o apologes_fw-la and_o their_o necessarinesse_n 2_o 551_o a_o a_o fable_n of_o the_o rabbin_n touch_v the_o convinction_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o the_o body_n 3_o 329_o b_o a_o fable_n touch_v christ_n and_o peter_n 4_o 79_o a_o face_n there_o be_v a_o face_n also_o of_o the_o mind_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o body_n 1_o 29_o b_o of_o colour_v the_o face_n read_v at_o large_a 2_o 507_o etc._n etc._n ¶_o look_v paint_v faculty_n faculty_n draw_v their_o excellency_n and_o worthiness_n from_o their_o end_n 1_n 8_o a_o as_o they_o be_v more_o excellent_a so_o be_v also_o their_o end_n as_o how_o 1_n 7_o b_o no_o difference_n between_o the_o worthiness_n of_o they_o whether_o they_o have_v work_v for_o their_o end_n or_o action_n and_o why_o 1_o 8_o a_o the_o excellency_n of_o end_n &_o faculty_n be_v as_o well_o towards_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o 1_n 8_o a_o i'faith_o theological_a a_o definition_n of_o faith_n 3_o 59_o b_o 57a_o 70_o a_o 90_o b_o 71_o b_o two_o 296_o b_o 634_o b_o what_o it_o signify_v 3_o 89b_n 90_o b_o the_o etymology_n thereof_o 3_o 63_o b_o what_o companion_n it_o shall_v have_v 2_o 549_o b_o of_o the_o chief_a and_o the_o common_a object_n thereof_o 3_o 58a_o 136_o b_o 144_o b_o 127_o b_o how_o the_o same_o prescribe_v to_o charity_n 1_n 8_o b_o the_o nature_n &_o property_n of_o the_o same_o 3_o 57_o ab_fw-la 92_o a_o 93_o a_o 132_o a_o true_a exercise_n thereof_o 4_o 157_o b_o of_o the_o certainty_n and_o uncerteintie_n of_o it_o 3_o 87_o ab_fw-la 126_o ab_fw-la 132_o a_o 130_o a_o 84_o a_o 90_o a_o 57_o ab_fw-la how_o it_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o sleep_n 3_o 138_o a_o 150_o a_o the_o triumph_n of_o the_o same_o 2_o 621_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v in_o our_o own_o power_n 3_o 140_o a_o 43_o b_o 16_o a_o two_o 260_o b_o that_o it_o be_v a_o firm_a assent_n 3_o 59a_o 70_o a_o what_o thing_n we_o be_v to_o examine_v in_o that_o assent_n 3_o 59_o b_o wherewith_o that_o assent_n do_v witness_v 3_o 60_o a_o why_o there_o can_v be_v no_o firm_a assent_n thereof_o in_o this_o life_n 3_o 71_o a_o whether_o faith_n only_o do_v justify_v 3_o 154_o b_o 135_o a_o 156_o ab_fw-la 125._o 126._o 93b_o 108_o a_o 150_o ab_fw-la 159_o a_o 151_o b_o 144_o b_o two_o 262_o b_o of_o abraham_n faith_n 3_o 235_o b_o 136_o a_o 89_o b_o 126_o ab_fw-la 125_o a_o 61_o ab_fw-la 84_o b_o 96_o a_o it_o be_v not_o void_a of_o mistraste_n 3_o 62_o a_o that_o his_o and_o we_o be_v all_o one_o 3_o 135_o b_o of_o the_o centution_n whereat_o christ_n woonder_v 3_o 129_o b_o of_o cornelius_n 2_o 160_o ab_fw-la 262_o b_o 263_o a_o paul_n assurance_n of_o he_o 2_o 629_o a_o whether_o we_o &_o the_o jew_n be_v great_a 2_o 588_o ab_fw-la it_o do_v not_o extinguish_v reason_n 3_o 61_o a_o whether_o it_o and_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n come_v in_o first_o 3_o 135_o b_o 148_o a_o 150_o a_o whether_o it_o may_v be_v sever_v from_o charity_n 3_o 69_o b_o 72_o a_o 106_o b_o 152_o a_o 154_o a_o and_o in_o who_o 3_o 7._o 3_o ab_fw-la whether_o a_o man_n which_o gréevouslie_o sin_v be_v destitute_a thereof_o 3_o 137_o b_o how_o it_o differ_v from_o hope_n 3_o 86_o b_o whether_o it_o have_v his_o beginning_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 3_o 140_o a_o two_o 578_o a_o 1_o 6_o a_o it_o make_v thing_n further_a off_o to_o be_v present_v two_o 587_o b_o 4_o 174_o a_o 195_o ab_fw-la of_o a_o justify_n faith_n 3_o 196_o a_o it_o be_v not_o in_o all_o alike_o 3_o 57_o b_o unto_o what_o thing_n it_o have_v respect_n 3_o 91_o b_o whether_o the_o definition_n thereof_o in_o the_o hebrew_n be_v a_o definition_n 3_o 91_o ab_fw-la when_o it_o change_v both_o his_o nature_n and_o kind_n 3_o 76_o a_o how_o fear_n and_o it_o be_v couple_v together_o 3_o 66_o b_o as_o it_o be_v a_o work_n it_o justifi_v not_o 3_o 136b_n 60_o b_o it_o confirm_v the_o law_n two_o manner_n of_o way_n 2_o 578_o a_o 3_o 151_o a_o how_o without_o it_o the_o law_n can_v be_v observe_v 2_o 577_o ab_fw-la 578_o a_o wherein_o truth_n and_o it_o do_v agree_v and_o differ_v 2_o 549_o b_o it_o ought_v to_o go_v before_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 2_o 586_o b_o it_o depend_v not_o of_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o will_n 3_o 61_o a_o it_o be_v chief_o carry_v unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n 2_o 609_o b_o it_o make_v all_o thing_n possible_a 2_o 613_o b_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o dignity_n thereof_o 3_o 144_o b_o why_o it_o rather_o than_o other_o work_n justifi_v 3_o 137_o a_o why_o it_o and_o confidence_n be_v join_v together_o 3_o 130_o a_o the_o force_n and_o power_n thereof_o 3_o 129_o ab_fw-la it_o depend_v upon_o call_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n 3_o 45_o a_o it_o go_v before_o justification_n 3_o 137_o a_o how_o it_o have_v life_n of_o another_o thing_n 3_o 135_o a_o by_o it_o we_o obtain_v the_o promise_n 3_o 150_o b_o 151_o a_o smith_n deni_v justification_n thereby_o 3_o 147_o b_o 148_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v far_o from_o the_o last_o perfection_n 3_o 138_o a_o whether_o it_o have_v her_o form_n of_o love_n 3_o 129_o a_o who_o seek_v god_n thereby_o and_o who_o by_o work_n 3_o 142_o b_o whether_o god_n attribute_v more_o unto_o work_n than_o unto_o it_o 3_o 146_o a_o the_o dignity_n thereof_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o object_n 3_o 144_o
from_o it_o 3_o 155_o b_o 156_o a_o the_o law_n be_v not_o idle_a no_o not_o after_o it_o 2_o 300_o a_o the_o order_n thereof_o in_o man_n reason_n how_o it_o behove_v to_o be_v 1_n 16_o b_o the_o promise_n concern_v the_o same_o be_v not_o conditional_a 3_o 136_o b_o how_o often_o it_o be_v take_v hold_n of_o 3_o 136_o a_o life_n and_o it_o be_v so_o join_v that_o oftentimes_o one_o be_v take_v for_o another_o 3_o 130_o b_o whether_o it_o may_v be_v separate_v from_o faith_n 3_o 131_o ab_fw-la 132_o ab_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o sacrament_n 3_o 157_o b_o 158_o a_o how_o diverslie_o the_o father_n understand_v it_o 3_o 158_o a_o who_o they_o be_v that_o cast_v away_o the_o grace_n thereof_o 3_o 160_o a_o why_o the_o father_n attribute_n it_o to_o charity_n only_o 3_o 159_o a_o whether_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v can_v doubt_v thereof_o 3_o 135_o a_o the_o effect_n of_o charity_n do_v follow_v it_o 3_o 237_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o faith_n 3_o 136_o b_o whether_o it_o depend_v of_o attrition_n 3_o 214_o b_o 215_o ab_fw-la in_o who_o proper_o it_o consist_v 3_o 124_o b_o 125_o a_o it_o depend_v not_o of_o baptism_n 4_o 136_o b_o 137_o a_o what_o faith_n bring_v it_o 3_o 57_o b_o predestination_n confirm_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o 3_o 3_o b_o how_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o christ_n resurrection_n 2_o 610_o a_o wherein_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v declare_v 2_o 609_o b_o it_o depend_v not_o of_o man_n will_n 3_o 28_o b_o of_o two_o inward_a motion_n thereof_o 3_o 124_o a_o one_o manner_n thereof_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n 2_o 586_o ab_fw-la why_o god_n will_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v by_o faith_n 3_o 96_o a_o it_o be_v show_v by_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n not_o of_o charity_n 3_o 137_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v give_v we_o by_o the_o promise_n 3_o 145_o b_o 146_o a_o whether_o in_o any_o respect_n it_o depend_v upon_o man_n 3_o 123_o b_o 124_o a_o whether_o charity_n do_v work_v it_o 3_o 77_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v only_o as_o touch_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n 3_o 103_o ab_fw-la 104_o ab_fw-la 105_o ab_fw-la unto_o who_o paul_n write_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o 3_o 108_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o work_n 3_o 93._o 94._o 95._o 96._o 97._o 98._o 99_o 100_o 101._o 102._o 106._o 107._o attribute_v by_o s●me_n both_o to_o work_v moral_o good_a and_o superstitious_a 3_o 102_o b_o whether_o it_o may_v concur_v with_o work_n 3_o 156_o b_o how_o it_o be_v grant_v unto_o work_n 3_o 147a_o goodly_a work_n a_o let_v or_o impediment_n thereunto_o 1_n 95_o ab_fw-la of_o work_n preparatorie_n thereunto_o and_o in_o who_o they_o be_v 2_o 264_o b_o how_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v by_o work_n 3_o 14_o b_o what_o the_o father_n say_v thereof_o give_v free_o 3_o 119_o b_o 120_o a.b_fw-ge by_o faith_n only_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o law_n aswell_o as_o to_o us._n two_o 584_o a_o it_o do_v consist_v of_o grace_n not_o of_o work_n 1_n 145_o b_o the_o pelagian_n heresy_n touch_v justification_n without_o grace_n 3_o 107_o a_o howe_n pighius_fw-la understand_v free_a justification_n 3_o 147_o b_o unto_o what_o thing_n he_o ascribe_v it_o 3_o 138_o b_o how_o he_o proove_v that_o it_o be_v have_v of_o love_n 3_o 138_o b_o smith_n deni_v it_o by_o faith_n 3_o 147_o b_o 148_o a_o aristotle_n understand_v not_o nor_o beléeve_v the_o justification_n through_o christ_n mention_v in_o scripture_n 1_n 132_o ab_fw-la the_o difference_n and_o order_n of_o divine_a and_o humane_a or_o civil_a justification_n 2_o 303_o a_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o publican_n be_v not_o in_o work_n but_o in_o prayer_n 2_o 266_o ab_fw-la proof_n of_o cornelius_n his_o justification_n when_o he_o pray_v 2_o 260_o a_o the_o cause_n and_o effect_n thereof_o 2_o 259_o ab_fw-la the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n be_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o all_o godliness_n 3_o 93_o b_o 94_o a_o ke._n key_n what_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 4_o 108_o a_o 297._o 2_o asleep_o 636_o a_o 3_o 116_o b_o diverslie_o interpret_v 3_o 218_o a_o look_v church_n ki._n king_n king_n be_v the_o head_n of_o common_a weal_n 4_o 35_o b_o whether_o they_o may_v be_v depose_v by_o a_o bishop_n in_o a_o case_n of_o offence_n 4_o 232_o ab_fw-la whether_o they_o or_o bishop_n be_v superior_a 4_o 22●b_n 230_o a_o why_o they_o be_v consecrate_v ●y_a bishop_n 4_o 623_o b_o how_o god_n reign_v together_o with_o the_o good_a 4_o 35_o a_o after_o what_o sort_n the_o bad_a must_v be_v obey_v 4_o 3●_n b_o in_o what_o manner_n we_o be_v all_o king_n and_o priest_n 4_o 12_o ab_fw-la kingdom_n terrestrial_a the_o papist_n make_v a_o division_n of_o a_o kingdom_n into_o two_o part_n 4_o 23●_n b_o the_o kingdom_n be_v not_o give_v to_o saul_n by_o the_o same_o covenaunt_n that_o it_o be_v unto_o david_n and_o why_o 1_n 209_o b_o two_o cause_n why_o saul_n be_v cast_v out_o and_o david_n surrogated_a in_o his_o room_n 2_o 209_o b_o of_o restore_v the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n 1_n 608_o b_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o god_n kingdom_n 3_o 161_o b_o 162_o a_o why_o in_o old_a time_n the_o kingdom_n and_o priesthood_n be_v commit_v to_o one_o man_n 4_o 327_o b_o kingdom_n whether_o empire_n and_o kingdom_n be_v of_o god_n 4_o 228_o a_o why_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n transfer_v they_o from_o nation_n to_o nation_n 2_o 264a_o unto_o who_o the_o distribution_n of_o they_o belong_v 4_o 305_o a_o by_o what_o mean_v god_n give_v they_o 4_o 306_o a_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o distribution_n of_o they_o by_o lot_n 4_o 305b_n the_o cause_n of_o their_o alteration_n 4_o 227_o b_o 228_o a_o the_o prophet_n may_v be_v a_o certain_a occasion_n not_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o overthrow_n of_o kingdom_n 4_o 237_o ab_fw-la kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o god_n prophecy_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n two_o 596_o b_o 597_o ab_fw-la 3_o 397_o a_o diverse_a error_n touch_v the_o same_o in_o this_o life_n 3_o 396_o a_o of_o the_o millenaru_n 3_o 358_o a_o whether_o it_o shall_v have_v a_o end_n 2_o 607_o a_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o his_o deliver_v up_o of_o the_o same_o to_o his_o father_n 2_o 607_o a_o that_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v the_o ministery_n of_o angel_n and_o labour_n of_o celestial_a body_n shall_v cease_v and_o why_o they_o now_o move_v 1_n 120a_o who_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 2_o 598_o ab_fw-la kingdom_n of_o heaven_n what_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n signify_v preach_v by_o christ_n 3_o 203_o b_o under_o the_o name_n thereof_o the_o church_n be_v understand_v 3_o 392_o a_o kindred_n a_o definition_n of_o kindred_n declare_v what_o it_o be_v 2_o 453_o a_o within_o what_o degree_n thereof_o marriage_n may_v not_o be_v make_v 447._o 448._o 449._o 450._o 451._o 452._o 453._o ¶_o look_v marriage_n kiss_n of_o the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n and_o the_o original_n thereof_o 4_o 218_o b_o kn._n knowe_n how_o we_o may_v knowe_n god_n by_o the_o workmanship_n of_o the_o world_n 1_n 16_o a_o we_o may_v know_v he_o three_o manner_n of_o way_n 1_n 16_o a_o two_o way_n natural_o 1_n 10_o b_o knowledge_n physical_a wherein_o opinion_n and_o knowledge_n do_v differ_v 2_o 296_o a_o it_o be_v either_o reveal_v or_o get_v by_o endeavour_n &_o study_n two_o 300_o b_o of_o certain_a affect_n which_o follow_v the_o knowledge_n either_o of_o evil_n or_o good_a two_o 411_o a_o it_o breed_v unquietness_n prove_v 1_n 168_o b_o wherein_o the_o power_n thereof_o consist_v 3_o 137_o a_o whether_o the_o body_n be_v troublesome_a thereunto_o 3_o 316_o b_o 317_o a_o we_o be_v lead_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o cause_n by_o their_o effect_n 1_n 47_o a_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n come_v partly_o by_o cause_n and_o partly_o by_o effect_n 3_o 75_o b_o how_o particular_a thing_n overcome_v a_o general_a knowledge_n 3_o 70_o b_o 71_o a_o of_o a_o knowledge_n that_o may_v seem_v both_o true_a and_o false_o 3_o 73_o b_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o to_o who_o the_o same_o be_v grant_v 1_n 81_o b_o of_o the_o knowledge_n which_o spirit_n have_v 1_n 81_o b_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o principal_a end_n be_v profitable_a 1_o 9_o a_o our_o natural_a knowledge_n corrupt_v 3_o 166_o a_o of_o certain_a thing_n which_o can_v be_v gather_v thereby_o 1_n 17_o a_o the_o pride_n of_o philosopher_n note_v therein_o 1_n two_o a_o they_o hide_v that_o which_o they_o have_v of_o god_n 1_o 11_o a_o how_o philosophy_n and_o divinity_n do_v vary_v concern_v
look_v imprecation_n witch_n who_o it_o be_v that_o appear_v at_o the_o call_n of_o the_o witch_n 1_n 72_o ab_fw-la it_o be_v not_o samuel_n say_v augustine_n 1_n 75_o a_o witch_n witch_n have_v no_o power_n over_o the_o godly_a 1_o 76_o b_o 77_o a_o law_n of_o prince_n against_o they_o 1_o 19a_o and_o such_o as_o repair_v unto_o they_o 1_n 84_o b_o 85_o a_o witchery_n of_o the_o force_n of_o witchery_n &_o the_o cause_n thereof_o in_o old_a woman_n and_o upon_o who_o it_o work_v most_o 1_n 79_o b_o witness_n these_o word_n there_o be_v three_o which_o bear_v witness_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n expound_v 1_o 105_o a_o the_o three_o thing_n which_o bear_v witness_n of_o christ_n 4_o 113_o a_o how_o many_o way_n god_n be_v call_v to_o witness_n 2_o 372_o a_o what_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o be_v forbid_v to_o bear_v false_a witness_n 2_o 553_o a_o witness_n two_o famous_a witness_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o last_o age_n 3_o 382_o b_o wo._n woman_n the_o state_n of_o the_o woman_n far_o worse_o than_o of_o the_o man_n 2_o 460_o b_o that_o she_o be_v and_o be_v not_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o after_o what_o manner_n 1_n 124_o a_o why_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o one_o woman_n shall_v be_v both_o a_o wife_n and_o a_o servant_n to_o any_o man_n 2_o 379_o ab_fw-la why_o paul_n will_v the_o woman_n to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n 2_o 242_o b_o whether_o before_o sin_n the_o woman_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o man_n 2_o 379_o a_o woman_n whether_o woman_n may_v be_v in_o warrefare_n 4_o 288_o a_o they_o teach_v the_o people_n open_o 4_o 7_o ab_fw-la they_o must_v have_v their_o head_n cover_v in_o the_o congregation_n and_o why_o 2_o 481_o b_o what_o woman_n labour_v to_o please_v man_n 2_o 510_o a_o why_o woman_n be_v command_v to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n 4_o 7_o b_o woman_n endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n 4_o 7_o a_o woman_n circumcise_v among_o the_o egyptian_n 4_o 111_o a_o why_o the_o woman_n that_o prophesy_v be_v command_v to_o cover_v their_o head_n 4_o 8_o a_o whether_o woman_n may_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n 4_o 7_o ab_fw-la what_o ornament_n woman_n may_v use_v and_o not_o use_v two_o 513b_n look_v woman_n what_o be_v speak_v concern_v paint_n of_o the_o face_n 2_o 508_o ab_fw-la and_o so_o forward_o holy_a woman_n maintain_v and_o relieve_v christ_n 4_o 29_o a_o why_o we_o be_v call_v man_n &_o why_o woman_n as_o augustine_n allegorical_o say_v 1_n 124_o a_o wooer_n what_o kind_n of_o emulation_n be_v betwixt_o wooer_n 2_o 417_o b_o wonder_n the_o difference_n between_o sign_n and_o wonder_n show_v out_o of_o diverse_a writer_n 1_n 71_o b_o why_o the_o scripture_n have_v so_o often_o join_v these_o two_o word_n together_o 1_n 71_o b_o ¶_o look_n miracle_n word_n of_o god_n the_o difference_n of_o god_n word_n and_o philosophy_n 1_o 58_o a_o the_o preach_v thereof_o have_v all_o man_n subject_a unto_o it_o 4_o 230_o b_o how_o miracle_n win_v credit_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 1_o 63_o b._n the_o same_o thing_n be_v offer_v by_o the_o word_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o sacrament_n 2_o 635_o a_o neither_o youth_n nor_o any_o other_o be_v except_v from_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 1_o 57_o b_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o same_o read_v all_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n the_o force_n of_o god_n word_n in_o the_o hearer_n of_o the_o same_o 1_o 58_o a_o the_o difference_n of_o god_n word_n special_o in_o the_o eucharist_n 4_o 196_o ab_fw-la 187_o b_o it_o be_v the_o word_n or_o christ_n that_o god_n speak_v by_o to_o the_o father_n and_o prophet_n 1_o 26_o b_o the_o force_n of_o the_o inward_a word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o mind_n 3_o 176_o b_o god_n use_v the_o inward_a word_n and_o the_o outward_a and_o in_o who_o 2_o 233_o a_o whether_o the_o outward_a or_o visible_a sign_n of_o baptism_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a to_o regeneration_n 2_o 233_o a_o of_o the_o word_n unwritten_a and_o the_o word_n write_v with_o the_o antiquity_n of_o both_o 1_n 42_o b_o and_o how_o to_o believe_v it_o 3_o 70_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v write_v before_o moses_n time_n 4_o 72_o a_o whether_o christ_n body_n be_v more_o worthy_a than_o his_o word_n 4_o 214_o a_o ¶_o look_v scripture_n word_n word_n be_v partly_o natural_a and_o partly_o after_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o namer_n 2_o 590._o 591_o a_o word_n be_v the_o principal_a sign_n thereof_o 2_o 542a_o b_o what_o they_o be_v 3_o 342_o b_o aristotle_n definition_n of_o they_o and_o who_o abuse_v they_o 2_o 544_o b_o the_o use_n of_o they_o 3_o 304b_n 4_o 144ab_n certain_a hebrew_n word_n receive_v into_o the_o church_n 4_o 215_o ab_fw-la work_v of_o god_n how_o be_v it_o true_a that_o god_n rest_v from_o work_v the_o seven_o day_n since_o he_o work_v daily_a and_o hourly_o 2_o 374_o b_o how_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a work_n unto_o god_n to_o punish_v evil_n 3_o 44a_n that_o god_n do_v work_v now_o also_o and_o by_o what_o mean_n and_o how_o 1_n 122b_n that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v evil_a be_v no_o work_n of_o god_n as_o pighius_fw-la say_v 2_o 218_o a_o work_v of_o man_n how_o the_o self_n same_o work_n be_v produce_v by_o god_n and_o by_o us._n 1_o 189_o b_o 190_o a_o how_o it_o may_v be_v both_o of_o god_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o evil_a man_n 1_n 183_o a_o how_o it_o can_v be_v the_o end_n of_o a_o action_n when_o it_o be_v after_o the_o action_n 1_n 7_o b_o sometime_o that_o which_o remain_v be_v more_o excellent_a and_o sometime_o the_o action_n and_o why_o 1_n 4_o b_o a_o habit_n in_o the_o mind_n be_v no_o work_n though_o it_o come_v of_o frequent_a action_n 1_o 4_o b_o whether_o there_o may_v be_v any_o work_n of_o man_n find_v that_o shall_v through_o please_v god_n two_o 572_o a_o none_o good_a say_v augustine_n without_o faith_n 2_o 259_o a_o to_o the_o goodness_n thereof_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o the_o same_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v not_o evil_a what_o then_o 2_o 311_o b_o a_o work_n can_v be_v make_v good_a by_o a_o habitual_a intent_n 1_n 93_o b_o 95a_o the_o rule_n whereby_o it_o must_v be_v direct_v 3_o 118_o a_o how_o the_o conscience_n may_v make_v a_o work_n good_a or_o evil_n 3_o 165_o a_o a_o work_n seem_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n may_v be_v sin_n prove_v 2_o 267_o b_o of_o a_o work_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o man_n and_o yet_o break_v not_o out_o from_o his_o own_o strength_n 1_o 132b_n how_o man_n be_v say_v to_o work_n together_o with_o god_n 3_o 13_o b_o 14_o a_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o work_n can_v justify_v 3_o 60._o of_o the_o work_n wrought_v which_o be_v suppose_v to_o merit_v salvation_n 4_o 106_o b_o 194_o b_o whether_o a_o infidel_n can_v do_v a_o work_n please_v god_n 3_o 118a_n a_o charitable_a work_n of_o a_o infidel_n namely_o to_o clothe_v the_o naked_a be_v sin_n prove_v two_o 267_o ab_fw-la work_v of_o god_n how_o and_o after_o what_o sort_n we_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n 1_o 13b_v three_o sort_n of_o they_o about_o his_o creature_n 1_o 181_o b_o 182_o a_o 184_o a_o they_o do_v help_v one_o a_o other_o two_o 599_o a_o of_o the_o particular_a and_o common_a work_n of_o the_o trinity_n ●_o 599_o b_o work_n of_o man_n no_o place_n for_o good_a work_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 3_o 368_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o do_v they_o for_o reward_n sake_n 2_o 573b_n 574_o a_o what_o be_v turn_v into_o sin_n 3_o 152_o b_o 153_o a_o 26_o a_o faith_n go_v necessary_o before_o they_o 3_o 154_o ab_fw-la faith_n perfect_v and_o form_v they_o 3_o 149_o b_o whether_o true_a faith_n and_o they_o can_v be_v separate_v 3_o 131_o b_o 132_o ab_fw-la how_o the_o old_a father_n of_o the_o church_n esteem_v they_o 3_o 121_o a_o they_o do_v serve_v both_o to_o predestination_n and_o reprobation_n 3_o 34a_o they_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o predestination_n not_o the_o cause_n thereof_o 3_o 14b_n what_o they_o that_o defend_v merit_n do_v think_v of_o they_o 3_o 54_o a_o they_o after_o justification_n do_v profit_n 3_o 144a_o a_o ill_a comparison_n make_v between_o they_o and_o sin_n 3_o 22_o ab_fw-la they_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o call_n 3_o 15_o a_o they_o depend_v of_o god_n yet_o must_v we_o not_o cast_v away_o all_o care_n of_o live_v well_o 3_o 3_o a_o whereof_o good_a work_v be_v sign_n and_o seal_n 3_o 95_o b_o in_o who_o they_o be_v a_o beginning_n to_o
the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v set_v forth_o unto_o they_o many_o other_o thing_n give_v he_o unto_o all_o man_n although_o he_o have_v not_o mercy_n upon_o all_o unto_o salvation_n god_n may_v do_v with_o his_o own_o what_o he_o will_n these_o thou_o say_v reject_v his_o mercy_n jerom_n say_v upon_o jonas_n god_n be_v merciful_a and_o pitiful_a of_o nature_n ready_a to_o save_v those_o by_o his_o mercy_n who_o he_o can_v by_o his_o justice_n but_o we_o cast_v away_o his_o mercy_n which_o be_v offer_v i_o grant_v it_o insomuch_o as_o it_o be_v offer_v we_o by_o general_a preach_n nevertheless_o god_n do_v not_o change_v their_o will_n that_o he_o can_v do_v this_o who_o deni_v if_o he_o will_v not_o it_o be_v upon_o just_a cause_n that_o he_o will_v not_o augustine_n de_n bono_fw-mi perseverantiae_fw-la the_o four_o chapter_n say_v that_o in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n we_o see_v a_o difference_n of_o god_n judgement_n and_o in_o diverse_a thing_n we_o see_v one_o judgement_n there_o be_v two_o twin_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o rebecca_n before_o they_o have_v do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n yet_o be_v say_v i_o have_v love_v jacob_n and_o hate_v esau_n some_o labour_v in_o the_o vineyard_n a_o whole_a day_n other_o labour_v but_o one_o hour_n only_o and_o yet_o receive_v all_o one_o reward_n as_o for_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o goodman_n of_o the_o house_n who_o son_n and_o servant_n do_v offend_v 23._o to_o the_o 23._o i_o say_v he_o enforce_v they_o not_o the_o goodman_n of_o the_o house_n be_v right_o accuse_v because_o he_o have_v a_o law_n but_o god_n have_v no_o law_n prescribe_v unto_o he_o he_o himself_o have_v prescribe_v to_o himself_o that_o he_o will_v do_v nothing_o uniustlie_o but_o his_o will_n be_v the_o chief_a rule_n of_o justice_n god_n forsake_v the_o reprobat_n and_o be_v also_o forsake_v by_o they_o and_o he_o do_v right_o but_o in_o that_o he_o leave_v such_o as_o leave_v he_o that_o be_v testify_v in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o chronicle_n the_o 15._o chapter_n the_o prophet_n azarias_n the_o son_n of_o obed_n 16_o 2._o par._n 15_o 16_o say_v unto_o king_n amazias_n see_v that_o you_o forsake_v he_o he_o will_v forsake_v you_o god_n be_v every_o where_o by_o his_o essence_n and_o his_o power_n but_o in_o those_o that_o be_v he_o by_o favour_n grace_n and_o ready_a help_n he_o leave_v not_o the_o wicked_a in_o the_o two_o former_a sort_n 24._o to_o the_o 24._o but_o in_o the_o three_o there_o be_v allege_v the_o sentence_n of_o anshelme_fw-mi de_fw-fr casu_fw-la diaboli_fw-la if_o god_n say_v he_o by_o a_o dishonest_a work_n such_o as_o be_v adultery_n do_v bring_v forth_o a_o child_n why_o can_v that_o will_n of_o god_n by_o a_o naughty_a will_v bring_v it_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a thing_n we_o grant_v that_o the_o subject_n may_v be_v bring_v forth_o of_o god_n but_o afterward_o it_o behoove_v to_o consider_v the_o defect_n in_o itself_o 27._o acts._n 2_o 23._o acts._n 4_o 27._o 34_o it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o act_n that_o they_o come_v together_o against_o christ_n to_o do_v whatsoever_o the_o hand_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n have_v decree_v and_o that_o christ_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o determine_a counsel_n of_o god_n touch_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o will_n of_o god_n have_v another_o meaning_n towards_o christ_n than_o it_o have_v towards_o the_o jew_n as_o touch_v christ_n god_n will_v that_o he_o shall_v bear_v the_o cross_n according_a to_o obedience_n and_o charity_n because_o he_o be_v our_o redemption_n and_o the_o divine_a nature_n bring_v to_o pass_v in_o he_o that_o he_o do_v bear_v it_o the_o the_o jew_n shall_v deal_v so_o cruel_o god_n permit_v they_o but_o in_o that_o permission_n there_o be_v a_o will_n not_o to_o hinder_v their_o naughty_a will_n that_o he_o may_v use_v the_o same_o and_o that_o redemption_n may_v follow_v by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o can_v have_v let_v it_o if_o he_o will_v can_v not_o my_o father_n say_v jesus_n give_v i_o eleven_o legion_n of_o angel_n to_o fight_v for_o i_o 53._o matt._n 26_o 53._o he_o use_v that_o sin_n to_o redeem_v us._n many_o good_a thing_n be_v offer_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o jew_n such_o be_v the_o preching_n miracle_n and_o reprehension_n which_o he_o use_v but_o through_o their_o default_n they_o be_v take_v in_o the_o worse_a part_n wherefore_o they_o be_v leave_v even_o in_o the_o necessity_n of_o sin_v wil._n of_o free_a wil._n where_o shall_v now_o be_v free_a will_n it_o be_v lose_v augustine_n in_o the_o thirty_o chapter_n of_o his_o enchiridion_n to_o laurence_n say_v that_o after_o man_n have_v sin_v he_o lose_v himself_o and_o his_o fréewill_n also_o he_o say_v so_o twice_o in_o that_o chapter_n and_o elsewhere_o also_o and_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o sentence_n the_o 25._o distinction_n but_o barnard_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lose_v freewill_n the_o reconcilement_n between_o barnard_n and_o augustine_n touch_v freewill_n these_o father_n disagree_v not_o if_o they_o be_v right_o understand_v for_o augustine_n take_v free_a will_n for_o free_a power_n of_o choose_v thing_n contrary_a this_o or_o that_o and_o while_o we_o be_v not_o regenerate_v we_o can_v true_o do_v acceptable_a thing_n unto_o god_n unless_o we_o be_v restore_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o free_a will_n as_o touch_v those_o thing_n do_v not_o remain_v in_o us._n whereas_o barnard_n say_v that_o free_a will_n remain_v what_o be_v his_o meaning_n he_o mean_v that_o although_o man_n sin_n they_o be_v not_o compel_v they_o have_v a_o consent_n they_o be_v willing_a and_o such_o free_a will_n remain_v and_o he_o himself_o expound_v himself_o when_o he_o set_v down_o three_o sort_n of_o liberty_n he_o have_v free_a will_n have_v what_o manner_n of_o liberty_n the_o godly_a have_v from_o compulsion_n from_o sin_n when_o his_o will_n be_v regenerate_v from_o misery_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o have_v no_o freedom_n from_o misery_n in_o this_o life_n from_o necessity_n we_o have_v by_o necessity_n he_o mean_v compulsion_n this_o appear_v out_o of_o barnard_n for_o he_o place_v a_o freedom_n of_o will_n in_o god_n he_o of_o necessity_n be_v good_a and_o yet_o this_o take_v not_o away_o his_o free_a will_n the_o angel_n and_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o heavenly_a country_n can_v sin_v yet_o they_o have_v a_o free_a will_n also_o he_o grant_v a_o freedom_n unto_o the_o devil_n and_o damn_a soul_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v be_v good_a but_o the_o evil_n which_o they_o will_v they_o will_v it_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n not_o that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o contrary_n the_o same_o author_n say_v it_o be_v grace_n which_o preserve_v and_o free_a will_n which_o be_v perserue_v by_o what_o mean_n it_o take_v health_n willing_o that_o be_v it_o assent_v it_o consent_v but_o he_o say_v not_o that_o it_o consent_v of_o itself_o nay_o rather_o he_o allege_v the_o place_n of_o paul_n 5._o 2._o cor._n 3_o 5._o that_o we_o can_v of_o ourselves_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n much_o less_o give_v our_o consent_n thereto_o and_o 13._o phili._n 2_o 13._o god_n work_v in_o we_o to_o will_n and_o to_o perform_v god_n say_v he_o without_o we_o set_v before_o we_o good_a cogitation_n by_o prevent_v we_o afterward_o he_o change_v the_o will_n he_o change_v say_v he_o the_o affection_n that_o the_o same_o be_v change_v the_o consent_n may_v follow_v wherefore_o he_o say_v that_o god_n do_v four_o thing_n in_o we_o first_o he_o stir_v up_o by_o send_v in_o good_a cogitation_n secondlie_o he_o heal_v that_o be_v he_o change_v the_o will_n thirdlie_o he_o confirm_v that_o be_v he_o lead_v to_o the_o act_n fourthly_a he_o preserve_v that_o we_o may_v not_o feel_v the_o want_n that_o we_o may_v persevere_v and_o that_o the_o good_a work_n may_v be_v accomplish_v 35_o to_o be_v brief_a we_o also_o affirm_v that_o god_n as_o concern_v sin_n be_v as_o epiphanius_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v clear_v from_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o sin_n because_o proper_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n and_o yet_o he_o sleep_v not_o this_o word_n also_o signify_v unblameable_a god_n can_v be_v draw_v into_o law_n by_o we_o what_o he_o do_v he_o do_v justly_o and_o for_o our_o part_n we_o add_v that_o it_o be_v a_o general_a opinion_n and_o must_v still_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o the_o world_n 30._o that_o nothing_o be_v do_v without_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n mat_n 10_o 29._o and_o 30._o be_v it_o good_a or_o bad_a without_o god_n providence_n humane_a action_n can_v
pass_v out_o of_o the_o bound_n of_o god_n providence_n see_v all_o the_o hear_v of_o our_o head_n be_v number_v if_o sparrow_n be_v small_a séelie_o bird_n of_o the_o least_o estimation_n do_v not_o light_v on_o the_o ground_n without_o the_o will_n of_o god_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o man_n do_n the_o which_o so_o far_o excel_v divine_a providence_n have_v a_o exceed_a great_a scope_n albeit_o it_o deal_v not_o all_o after_o a_o sort_n towards_o good_a thing_n and_o towards_o bad_a yet_o be_v they_o not_o do_v without_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n which_o be_v god_n divine_a will_n whereby_o thing_n be_v mighty_o and_o very_a well_o govern_v and_o direct_v to_o their_o own_o proper_a end_n neither_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v any_o offence_n unto_o we_o that_o he_o leave_v some_o evil_n in_o the_o world_n for_o although_o they_o be_v against_o particular_a nature_n yet_o they_o be_v available_a for_o common_a commodity_n if_o all_o evil_n be_v take_v away_o we_o shall_v be_v destitute_a of_o many_o good_a thing_n wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o life_n of_o lion_n if_o there_o be_v no_o slaughter_n of_o sheep_n wherewith_o the_o lion_n be_v feed_v neither_o will_v there_o be_v patience_n of_o martyr_n unless_o the_o cruelty_n of_o tyrant_n be_v permit_v by_o god_n plato_n plato_n that_o which_o plato_n write_v in_o the_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr republica_n objection_n a_o objection_n seem_v to_o be_v against_o this_o doctrine_n of_o we_o he_o say_v that_o god_n be_v author_n but_o of_o few_o thing_n unto_o man_n because_o there_o be_v many_o evil_n among_o man_n and_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o none_o of_o they_o whereby_o he_o seem_v to_o straighten_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n into_o a_o narrow_a room_n if_o he_o mean_v the_o cause_n effectual_a and_o speak_v of_o sin_n we_o do_v grant_v it_o and_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n providence_n be_v not_o in_o a_o profound_a sleep_n but_o plato_n in_o the_o same_o place_n have_v that_o which_o must_v not_o be_v grant_v general_o of_o the_o godly_a for_o he_o deni_v that_o god_n come_v unto_o man_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o stranger_n form_n that_o god_n appear_v in_o visible_a form_n but_o angel_n be_v entertain_v by_o abraham_n &_o lot_n in_o ghestwise_n whereas_o he_o say_v that_o god_n can_v be_v change_v as_o touch_v his_o substance_n it_o be_v true_a but_o that_o he_o appéer_v sometime_o in_o certain_a form_n it_o must_v be_v grant_v he_o talk_v with_o moses_n out_o of_o the_o burn_a bush_n he_o declare_v himself_o upon_o mount_n sina_n by_o voice_n he_o exhibit_v himself_o unto_o the_o prophet_n by_o sundry_a likeness_n i_o think_v that_o plato_n mean_v those_o vile_a change_n which_o the_o poet_n speak_v of_o that_o he_o be_v change_v into_o a_o swan_n a_o eagle_n or_o a_o bull_n which_o thing_n must_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v attribute_v unto_o god_n objection_n another_o objection_n 36_o but_o whereas_o i_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v be_v rule_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o that_o plato_n say_n can_v be_v no_o let_n it_o seem_v not_o sufficient_a for_o damascene_fw-la also_o be_v against_o it_o who_o say_v in_o his_o second_o book_n the_o 29._o chapter_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o in_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n for_o he_o add_v that_o the_o thing_n within_o we_o be_v not_o of_o god_n providence_n but_o belong_v to_o our_o own_o free_a will_n but_o shall_v not_o therefore_o our_o action_n which_o he_o say_v be_v within_o we_o be_v in_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n let_v they_o believe_v this_o that_o will_v for_o i_o believe_v it_o not_o he_o add_v that_o which_o be_v more_o hard_a namely_o that_o the_o choice_n of_o do_v thing_n be_v in_o we_o but_o that_o the_o perfection_n and_o accomplishment_n of_o good_a thing_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n together_o with_o us._n who_o will_v say_v it_o come_v from_o we_o if_o we_o choose_v to_o be_v do_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v good_a the_o apostle_n say_v 13._o phil._n 2_o 13._o that_o god_n work_v in_o we_o to_o will_v and_o perform_v and_o whereas_o damascene_fw-la take_v away_o these_o thing_n from_o divine_a providence_n i_o like_v it_o not_o he_o distinguish_v providence_n into_o good_a pleasure_n and_o permission_n these_o i_o be_o not_o against_o i_o affirm_v both_o namely_o that_o providence_n not_o only_o rule_v good_a thing_n but_o that_o it_o also_o bring_v they_o to_o pass_v and_o that_o it_o permit_v evil_a thing_n but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o it_o permit_v they_o all_o whole_o to_o themselves_o for_o it_o use_v they_o and_o he_o distinguish_v that_o same_o permission_n or_o good_a pleasure_n and_o say_v that_o one_o be_v a_o dispense_n and_o instruct_v permission_n because_o it_o turn_v to_o the_o discipline_n of_o saint_n if_o they_o be_v leave_v without_o help_n for_o a_o time_n sometime_o it_o be_v call_v a_o full_a grow_v permission_n and_o as_o it_o be_v without_o hope_n of_o recovery_n as_o when_o man_n through_o their_o own_o default_n perish_v and_o béecome_v past_a amendment_n even_o we_o also_o say_v that_o god_n leave_v his_o elect_a for_o a_o time_n but_o other_o for_o ever_o moreover_o he_o say_v that_o god_n by_o a_o inward_a cause_n will_v have_v man_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o salvation_n but_o that_o he_o will_v afterward_o punish_v they_o when_o they_o offend_v he_o call_v it_o a_o follow_a will_n as_o though_o it_o do_v follow_v by_o our_o own_o default_n i_o for_o my_o part_n say_v that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v of_o one_o sort_n but_o that_o the_o object_n be_v diverse_a there_o be_v a_o choose_a sort_n who_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v save_v and_o there_o be_v reprobate_n also_o who_o he_o will_v for_o their_o sin_n to_o be_v punish_v but_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o there_o make_v a_o stay_n he_o will_v show_v his_o power_n in_o they_o wherefore_o i_o affirm_v that_o providence_n be_v universal_a whatsoever_o damascene_fw-la say_v of_o which_o mind_n augustine_n also_o be_v in_o the_o 58._o sentence_n say_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v either_o visible_o or_o sensible_o which_o be_v not_o either_o command_v or_o permit_v from_o the_o invisible_a or_o perpetual_a palace_n of_o the_o high_a emperor_n and_o so_o he_o except_v nothing_o from_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n 37_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n place_n the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o place_n that_o i_o think_v meet_a to_o be_v speak_v of_o concern_v this_o matter_n there_o remain_v many_o other_o thing_n but_o a_o end_n must_v be_v have_v indeed_o i_o know_v melanchthon_n philip_n melanchthon_n that_o the_o reverend_a man_n philip_n melanchthon_n who_o i_o love_v &_o honour_n seem_v to_o say_v otherwise_o but_o here_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o same_o man_n himself_o in_o his_o old_a common_a place_n read_v you_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v there_o concern_v predestination_n and_o free_a will_n he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n free_a will_n which_o peradventure_o i_o will_v not_o have_v say_v be_v most_o strange_a unto_o the_o divine_a scripture_n and_o from_o the_o judgement_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n further_o he_o say_v that_o plato_n philosophy_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n subvert_v piety_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o that_o place_n if_o we_o come_v say_v he_o to_o our_o own_o inward_a and_o outward_a do_n those_o be_v refer_v to_o god_n providence_n all_o thing_n do_v come_v to_o pass_v even_o as_o they_o be_v appoint_v but_o in_o outward_a action_n if_o they_o be_v refer_v unto_o will_n there_o be_v a_o freedom_n in_o us._n if_o we_o shall_v consider_v the_o inward_a good_a thing_n which_o god_n do_v require_v there_o he_o say_v be_v no_o freedom_n if_o our_o inward_a affect_n begin_v to_o pass_v measure_n they_o can_v be_v stay_v the_o same_o thing_n say_v ambrose_n upon_o luke_n and_o it_o be_v often_o allege_a by_o augustine_n that_o our_o hart_n be_v not_o in_o our_o own_o power_n there_o be_v other_o also_o which_o disagree_v not_o from_o they_o of_o which_o number_n be_v zuinglius_fw-la and_o luther_n the_o noble_a instrument_n of_o reform_a religion_n likewise_o oecolampadius_n bucer_n and_o caluine_n and_o i_o may_v allege_v other_o but_o i_o strive_v not_o to_o bring_v many_o witness_n i_o say_v that_o to_o speak_v proper_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o the_o world_n be_v it_o good_a or_o evil_n without_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n but_o &_o if_o i_o have_v not_o hit_v the_o mark_n i_o shoot_v at_o i_o be_o sorry_a for_o it_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v by_o any_o sufficient_a proof_n show_v this_o opinion_n to_o be_v ungodlie_a or_o hurtful_a